Selected quad for the lemma: spirit_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
spirit_n word_n work_n wrath_n 235 3 6.7854 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A90625 The voice of the Spirit. Or, An essay towards a discoverie of the witnessings of the spirit by opening and answering these following queries. Q. 1. What is the witnessing worke of the Spirit? 2 How doth the Spirit witnesse to a soule its adoption? 3. Who are capable of attaining the witnessings of the Spirit? 4. How may a soul know its injoyment of them? 5. By what meanes may a soule attaine them? To which is added. Roses from Sharon or sweet experiences reached out by Christ to some of his beloved ones in this wildernes. / By Samuel Petto preacher of the Gospell at Sandcroft in Suffolke. Petto, Samuel, 1624?-1711. 1654 (1654) Wing P1903; Thomason E1500_2; ESTC R208647 109,805 256

There are 26 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

to_o a_o more_o through_o handle_v of_o this_o great_a point_n or_o may_v draw_v our_o any_o thing_n to_o the_o further_o distinguish_v the_o speaking_o of_o the_o spirit_n from_o satanical_a illusion_n it_o will_v be_v a_o matter_n of_o rejoice_v to_o i_o and_o if_o thou_o reap'_v any_o spiritual_a advantage_n by_o what_o thou_o read_v give_v the_o glory_n of_o all_o to_o the_o lord_n and_o send_v up_o some_o groan_n and_o cry_n unto_o the_o father_n of_o mercy_n for_o i_o that_o i_o may_v have_v a_o practical_a experimental_a acquaintance_n with_o the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o i_o have_v endeavour_v in_o a_o doctrinal_a way_n to_o clear_v up_o to_o thou_o and_o that_o thou_o may_v be_v fill_v with_o the_o same_o spirit_n shall_v be_v the_o prayer_n of_o he_o who_o be_v a_o poor_a unworthy_a labourer_n in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o gospel_n s._n p._n courteous_a reader_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o author_n far_a distance_n from_o the_o press_n many_o fault_n have_v escape_v some_o of_o the_o chief_a be_v here_o note_v out_o which_o thou_o be_v desire_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o errata_n page_n 3._o line_n 11._o for_o rathen_a read_v rather_o p._n 9_o l._n 18._o for_o no_o r._n to_o to_o yield_v attention_n p._n 11._o l._n 14._o for_o or_o conscience_n 1._o our_o conscience_n p._n 27._o l._n 17._o for_o time_n r._n thing_n p._n 30._o l._n 24._o for_o antedent_n r._n antecedent_n p._n 34._o l._n 17._o for_o understand_v r._n understand_v p._n 37._o l._n 18._o for_o promise_n r._n premise_n p._n 38._o for_o spiritual_a ground_n r._n scripturall_a ground_n p._n 40._o l._n 9_o for_o conjunction_n r._n conjunctim_fw-la or_o in_o canjunction_n p._n 44._o l._n 12._o for_o be_v r._n be_v p._n 54._o l._n 13._o for_o curruption_n r._n corruption_n p._n 58._o l._n 16._o for_o appleate_a r._n appeal_n p._n 67._o l._n 9_o blot_n out_o of_o p._n 104._o l._n 14._o for_o himseife_n r._n himself_o p._n 113._o l._n 8._o read_v thus_o and_o hence_o they_o be_v say_v p._n 119._o l._n 20._o for_o be_v r._n as_o p._n 138._o l._n 19_o for_o bolines_n r._n holiness_n p._n 140._o l._n 12._o for_o consequence_n r._n consequence_n p._n 140._o l._n 16._o for_o be_v as_o r._n bias_n p._n 148._o l._n 26._o r._n they_o that_o be_v after_o the_o spirit_n p._n 150._o l._n 5._o for_o have_v r._n have_v p._n 160._o l._n 8._o for_o carnal_a confidence_n be_v read_v thus_o a_o carnal_a confidence_n be_v p._n 160._o l._n 10._o for_o be_v r._n be_v p._n 81._o l._n 8._o for_o lean_a r._n leave_n p._n 166._o l._n 11._o for_o can_v r._n can_v not_o p._n 168._o l._n 18._o for_o spirit_n r._n spirit_n p._n 173._o l._n 25._o for_o the_o r._n they_o p._n 175._o on_o the_o margin_n for_o distincti_fw-la r._n distinctè_fw-la p._n 176._o l._n 3._o for_o hair_n r._n heir_n p._n 181._o l._n 30._o for_o its_o r._n he_o p._n 188._o l._n 5._o blot_n out_o it_o p._n 191._o l._n 6._o read_v thus_o be_v hint_v in_o a_o brief_a discovery_n of_o the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o saint_n rom_n 8._o verse_n 16._o the_o spirit_n itself_o witness_v with_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n chap._n i._o open_v the_o text_n and_o show_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n this_o apostle_n paul_n have_v make_v it_o his_o great_a design_n in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n to_o clear_v up_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n he_o draw_v up_o a_o comfortable_a conclusion_n chap_n 8.1_o that_o there_o be_v no_o condemnation_n to_o those_o which_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o as_o well_o to_o prevent_v a_o presumptuous_a claim_n of_o interest_n in_o christ_n as_o to_o deliver_v from_o ungrounded_a doubt_n thereof_o 〈◊〉_d characterize_v those_o which_o be_v in_o christ_n in_o the_o follow_a verse_n and_o the_o inhabitation_n of_o the_o divine_a spirit_n ver_fw-la 9_o with_o its_o concurrence_n in_o the_o mortification_n of_o sin_n ver_fw-la 13._o and_o as_o a_o conductor_n or_o leader_n ver_fw-la 14._o these_o be_v make_v the_o great_a discriminate_v difference_v thing_n which_o those_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n be_v set_v out_o and_o distinguish_v from_o other_o by_o but_o because_o man_n be_v apt_a to_o be_v deceive_v &_o dream_v of_o a_o enjoyment_n of_o leading_n from_o the_o divine_a spirit_n when_o they_o be_v without_o they_o therefore_o he_o add_v this_o ver_fw-la 16._o the_o spirit_n itself_o witness_v etc._n etc._n so_o that_o the_o word_n express_v the_o way_n whereby_o a_o soul_n attain_v a_o knowledge_n of_o its_o union_n with_o christ_n and_o consequent_o of_o its_o freedom_n from_o condemnation_n and_o it_o be_v this_o the_o spirit_n itself_o witness_v &c._n &c._n where_o you_o may_v take_v notice_n 1._o who_o witness_v the_o spirit_n itself_o with_o our_o spirit_n 2._o what_o be_v witness_v that_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n the_o spirit_n i.e._n not_o only_a gift_n and_o grace_n but_o the_o spirit_n who_o be_v the_o worker_n or_o bestower_n of_o these_o that_o spirit_n which_o have_v enable_v we_o to_o believe_v and_o do_v enable_v we_o to_o cry_v abba_n father_n and_o which_o shall_v quicken_v our_o mortal_a body_n in_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n ver_fw-la 11_o the_o spirit_n i.e._n who_o search_v the_o deep_a thing_n of_o god_n who_o undoubted_o know_v whither_o we_o be_v adopt_v or_o not_o and_o who_o testimony_n be_v infallible_a he_o be_v truth_n itself_o this_o divine_a spirit_n not_o by_o a_o proxy_n but_o itself_o witness_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d contestatur_fw-la testimonium_fw-la reddit_fw-la und_fw-ge testatur_fw-la i.e._n co-witnesseth_a or_o render_v a_o testimony_n or_o witness_v together_o say_v leigh_n sac._n crit._n sac._n the_o word_n be_v compose_v with_o the_o preposition_n together_o or_o with_o and_o so_o it_o denote_v a_o double_a or_o twin-testimony_n 1._o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 2._o our_o spirit_n it_o bear_v witness_n say_v he_o together_o with_o rathen_a then_o to_o our_o spirit_n yet_o the_o word_n be_v sometime_o use_v to_o express_v a_o single_a testimony_n wicked_a man_n be_v confident_a of_o their_o adoption_n upon_o the_o false_a deceitful_a and_o delude_a testimony_n of_o their_o own_o spirit_n but_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v the_o divine_a spirit_n who_o can_v lie_v or_o bear_v false_a witness_n to_o testify_v fayus_n si_fw-mi unus_fw-la esset_fw-la testis_fw-la dubitatio_fw-la non_fw-la tolleretur_fw-la sed_fw-la duo_fw-la sunt_fw-la testes_fw-la itaque_fw-la nullus_fw-la restat_fw-la dubitationi_fw-la locus_fw-la spiritus_fw-la noster_fw-la fallere_fw-la posset_n nos_fw-la sed_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sanctus_n non_fw-la sinit_fw-la nos_fw-la falli_fw-la fayus_n to_o or_o with_o their_o spirit_n their_o adoption_n here_o be_v two_o witness_n the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n and_o our_o spirit_n i.e._n either_o 1._o our_o soul_n luke_n 23.46_o into_o thy_o hand_n i_o commend_v my_o spirit_n i.e._n my_o soul_n act._n 7.59_o and_o so_o it_o be_v contra_fw-la distinguish_v from_o the_o body_n 1_o corin._n 6.20_o glorify_v god_n in_o your_o body_n and_o in_o your_o spirit_n i.e._n in_o your_o soul_n so_o 1_o cor._n 7.34_o and_o if_o you_o take_v it_o in_o this_o sense_n it_o hold_v out_o thus_o much_o that_o the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o to_o the_o outward_a ear_n but_o to_o the_o heart_n the_o spirit_n make_v report_n of_o divine_a mercy_n to_o the_o inner_a man_n the_o way_n of_o its_o witness_v be_v not_o external_a by_o a_o audible_a voice_n but_o internal_a by_o secret_a whisper_n to_o the_o soul_n not_o by_o outward_a expression_n but_o by_o inward_a unspeakable_a inspiration_n or_o 2._o our_o spirit_n i._o e_o our_o uunderstanding_n judgement_n and_o conscience_n which_o be_v renew_v be_v call_v also_o by_o the_o name_n of_o spirit_n 1_o cor_fw-la 2.11_o what_o man_n know_v the_o thing_n of_o a_o man_n save_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o man_n etc._n etc._n here_o our_o spirit_n denote_v the_o know_a faculty_n and_o ver_fw-la 15_o 16._o he_o that_o be_v spiritual_a judge_v all_o thing_n etc._n etc._n here_o the_o judge_a power_n be_v give_v unto_o this_o spirit_n of_o a_o man_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n i_o take_v our_o spirit_n in_o the_o text_n and_o that_o because_o it_o be_v the_o proper_a office_n or_o work_n of_o our_o understanding_n judgement_n and_o conscience_n to_o receive_v embrace_v or_o refuse_v such_o testimony_n as_o be_v offer_v rom._n 2.15_o their_o conscience_n also_o bear_v witness_n etc._n etc._n 2_o cor._n 1.12_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o conscience_n the_o meaning_n then_o of_o the_o word_n be_v this_o that_o the_o divine_a spirit_n witness_v to_o our_o understanding_n and_o judgement_n and_o with_o our_o conscience_n that_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n i_o e._n that_o we_o have_v
freedom_n from_o condemnation_n ver_fw-la 1._o and_o this_o he_o clear_v v._o 5.9.13_o 14._o but_o lest_o they_o shall_v doubt_v or_o question_n whither_o they_o find_v a_o mortification_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o spirit_n or_o enjoy_v the_o leading_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o not_o in_o the_o last_o place_n he_o add_v this_o as_o the_o high_a sure_a and_o most_o infallible_a mean_n to_o help_v a_o soul_n unto_o a_o sight_n of_o its_o interest_n in_o christ_n ver_fw-la 16._o the_o spirit_n itself_o witness_v with_o our_o spirit_n etc._n etc._n the_o other_o work_n be_v of_o a_o witness_v nature_n but_o this_o be_v beyond_o all_o other_o help_n this_o make_v the_o other_o evidence_v and_o give_v sight_n of_o freedom_n from_o condemnation_n and_o of_o our_o sonship_n so_o that_o the_o context_n favour_v this_o interpretation_n 2._o from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n the_o spirit_n be_v say_v to_o witness_v with_o our_o spirit_n it_o be_v testimony_n irresistible_o overcome_v our_o spirit_n i.e._n or_o conscience_n it_o cause_v they_o to_o conclude_v thesame_a thing_n and_o so_o there_o be_v a_o joynt-testimony_n some_o time_n the_o spirit_n utter_v its_o voice_n and_o our_o spirit_n hold_v off_o but_o our_o spirit_n be_v fetch_v in_o and_o make_v use_n of_o in_o this_o way_n of_o witness_v which_o be_v intend_v in_o the_o text_n both_o agree_v in_o this_o numericall_a conclusion_n that_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o so_o it_o be_v a_o efficacious_a witness_v i_o may_v clear_v it_o from_o what_o follow_v ver_fw-la 33.38_o and_o from_o other_o scripture_n which_o call_v the_o persuasion_n or_o conclusion_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v witness_v a_o witness_v as_o luk._n 4.22_o all_o bear_v he_o witness_v i.e._n conclude_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o approbation_n and_o allowance_n but_o i_o shall_v proceed_v to_o a_o description_n which_o will_v further_o discover_v what_o it_o be_v for_o the_o spirit_n to_o witness_v it_o be_v for_o the_o spirit_n by_o some_o manifest_a witness_n what_o it_o be_v for_o the_o spirit_n to_o witness_n and_o special_a act_n and_o operation_n of_o its_o own_o to_o ascertain_v a_o soul_n by_o the_o word_n or_o gospel_n of_o its_o adoption_n or_o it_o be_v for_o the_o spirit_n by_o clear_a irradiation_n and_o other_o effectual_a operation_n with_o the_o word_n to_o work_v a_o particular_a soul_n by_o direct_a or_o reflexive_a act_n into_o a_o knowledge_n persuasion_n or_o conclusion_n of_o its_o acceptation_n into_o favour_n with_o god_n chap._n iu._n of_o the_o witness_n the_o spirit_n and_o the_o thing_n witness_v and_o wherein_o the_o witness_v work_n do_v consist_v here_o be_v many_o thing_n considerable_a as_o 1._o who_o be_v the_o witness_n the_o spirit_n this_n be_v clear_a in_o the_o text_n rom._n 8.16_o the_o spirit_n itself_o the_o truth_n of_o a_o testimony_n have_v a_o dependence_n on_o the_o fidelity_n of_o the_o witness_n and_o so_o the_o spirit_n who_o can_v lie_v be_v appoint_v by_o office_n unto_o this_o work_n that_o a_o soul_n may_v be_v infallible_o assure_v of_o what_o be_v testify_v be_v it_o any_o other_o it_o may_v remain_v under_o doubt_n and_o think_v it_o too_o good_a news_n to_o be_v true_a that_o it_o shall_v have_v god_n for_o its_o father_n and_o so_o be_v a_o joynt-heire_n with_o christ_n in_o that_o exceed_a eternal_a weight_n of_o glory_n o_o but_o if_o the_o spirit_n witness_v this_o who_o be_v faithful_a in_o all_o he_o say_v this_o may_v give_v a_o full_a assurance_n of_o son_n ship_n or_o free_v it_o from_o those_o fear_n doubt_n jealousy_n and_o suspicion_n which_o it_o have_v labour_v under_o about_o this_o question_n this_o proclaim_v the_o infinite_a condescension_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o itself_o who_o be_v very_a god_n shall_v stoop_v so_o low_a as_o to_o be_v a_o witness_n in_o our_o matter_n who_o be_v dust_n and_o ash_n that_o the_o creator_n shall_v be_v a_o witness_n to_o the_o creature_n this_o be_v a_o high_a favour_n indeed_o and_o hereby_o this_o testimony_n be_v difference_v 1._o from_o the_o delusion_n of_o satan_n he_o be_v ready_a to_o bear_v false_a witness_n to_o the_o soul_n purposely_o to_o lead_v it_o into_o mistake_a conclusion_n about_o its_o condition_n and_o harken_v to_o his_o voice_n be_v extreme_o dangerous_a 2._o from_o the_o single_a testimony_n of_o our_o spirit_n i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o spirit_n do_v witness_v effectual_o without_o our_o spirit_n but_o the_o text_n plain_o make_v two_o the_o spirit_n with_o our_o spirit_n so_o that_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n by_o some_o act_n peculiar_a to_o itself_o be_v not_o in_o consociation_n with_o cur_n spirit_n the_o testimony_n be_v most_o unsafe_a dangerous_a and_o delude_v o_o take_v heed_n of_o trust_v the_o single_a testimony_n of_o your_o own_o treacherous_a spirit_n in_o the_o but_o syne_v of_o your_o soul_n for_o eternity_n but_o if_o the_o holy-spirit_n have_v fetch_v in_o your_o spirit_n and_o overcome_v they_o into_o a_o conclusion_n of_o your_o adoption_n you_o may_v safe_o own_v it_o at_o the_o mouth_n of_o these_o two_o witness_n 2._o what_o be_v the_o thing_n witness_v viz._n the_o sonship_n of_o particular_a soul_n the_o spirit_n do_v not_o only_o witness_v the_o truth_n of_o some_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n it_o do_v not_o only_o give_v a_o persuasion_n that_o all_o which_o receive_v christ_n or_o believe_v on_o his_o name_n have_v authority_n to_o become_v the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o joh._n 1.12_o not_o bare_o that_o some_o that_o believer_n but_o say_v the_o text_n that_o we_o even_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n 3._o wherein_o the_o witness_v work_n do_v consist_v viz._n in_o the_o spirit_n give_v manifestation_n and_o work_v the_o heart_n into_o persuasion_n and_o conclusion_n of_o adoption_n 1._o it_o do_v not_o consist_v only_o in_o afford_v such_o operation_n as_o be_v measure_v by_o gospel_n rule_n do_v give_v assertion_n or_o affirmation_n of_o adoption_n but_o a_o effectual_a witness_v be_v here_o intend_a such_o as_o indeed_o cause_v the_o matter_n to_o be_v establish_v which_o be_v to_o accomplish_v the_o end_n of_o that_o witness_v as_o matth._n 18.16_o the_o spirit_n establish_v the_o soul_n in_o a_o persuasion_n of_o god_n fatherly_a love_n through_o christ_n rom._n 8.38_o i_o be_o persuade_v etc._n etc._n and_o job_n 19.25_o i_o know_v my_o redeemer_n live_v and_o hence_o it_o be_v make_v one_o end_n of_o our_o receive_v the_o spirit_n 2.12_o 1_o coriu_n 2.12_o that_o we_o may_v know_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v give_v we_o of_o god_n 1_o joh._n 3.24_o hereby_o we_o know_v that_o he_o abide_v in_o we_o by_o the_o spirit_n 2_o corin._n 5._o ver_fw-la 1.6_o we_o know_v that_o we_o have_v a_o build_n of_o god_n &_o ver_fw-la 5_o 6._o because_o he_o have_v give_v we_o the_o earnest_n of_o his_o spirit_n therefore_o we_o be_v always_o confident_a so_o that_o the_o spirit_n witness_v by_o give_v a_o knowledge_n and_o persuasion_n of_o adoption_n 2._o it_o do_v not_o confist_n in_o its_o fill_v the_o soul_n with_o consolation_n many_o if_o they_o find_v comfort_n by_o a_o word_n than_o they_o think_v the_o spirit_n have_v witness_v adoption_n else_o not_o whereas_o this_o witness_v work_n may_v be_v enjoy_v in_o a_o very_a disconsolate_a condition_n job_n 19_o v._o 6_o 7.8_o etc._n etc._n here_o be_v but_o little_a comfort_n and_o yet_o much_o assurance_n ver_fw-la 25._o and_o matth._n 27.46_o there_o be_v a_o want_n of_o comfort_n why_o have_v thou_o forsake_v i_o and_o yet_o not_o a_o want_n of_o assurance_n for_o with_o the_o same_o breath_n he_o challenge_v propriety_n in_o god_n twice_o over_o my_o god_n my_o god_n indeed_o this_o bless_a news_n do_v often_o fill_v the_o heart_n with_o joy_n unspeakable_a and_o full_a of_o glory_n but_o this_o consolation_n be_v rather_o consequential_a to_o the_o witness_v of_o the_o spirit_n then_o that_o which_o give_v be_v to_o it_o it_o be_v a_o effect_n of_o it_o not_o a_o ingredient_n into_o it_o more_o than_o other_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n testification_n be_v a_o different_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n from_o consolation_n chap._n v._o of_o the_o way_n and_o mean_n how_o the_o spirit_n do_v accomplish_v this_o witness_v work_n in_o many_o particular_n 4._o in_o what_o way_n or_o how_o the_o spirit_n do_v accomplish_v this_o witness_v work_n in_o the_o description_n the_o spirit_n be_v say_v to_o witness_v 1._o by_o its_o operation_n within_o 2._o by_o its_o word_n without_o 1._o the_o spirit_n perform_v the_o office_n of_o a_o witness_n by_o operation_n within_o the_o soul_n we_o be_v not_o to_o expect_v any_o apparition_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o any_o visible_a shape_n to_o the_o eye_n of_o our_o body_n or_o any_o audible_a voice_n from_o heaven_n to_o our_o outward_a ear_n be_v
seem_v to_o be_v under_o a_o midnight_n of_o spiritual_a darkness_n before_o yet_o when_o the_o spirit_n have_v shine_v upon_o its_o own_o work_n in_o the_o soul_n and_o put_v new_a life_n into_o former_a experience_n than_o it_o can_v conclude_v that_o the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n be_v arisen_a upon_o or_o in_o the_o heart_n who_o be_v hide_v or_o unseen_a till_o then_o in_o a_o great_a measure_n and_o hence_o the_o apostle_n pray_v eph._n 1._o v._n 17_o 18_o 19_o that_o they_o may_v have_v the_o spirit_n of_o revelation_n and_o for_o what_o end_n v._o 18._o that_o you_o may_v know_v what_o be_v the_o hope_n of_o his_o call_n i_o e._n that_o you_o may_v know_v upon_o what_o certain_a ground_n zanch._n ut_fw-la sciatis_fw-la qualis_fw-la &_o quam_fw-la certa_fw-la sit_fw-la spes_fw-la qua_fw-la nos_fw-la sperare_fw-la jussit_fw-la dominus_fw-la atque_fw-la ita_fw-la ne_fw-la ulla_fw-la subeat_fw-la animos_fw-la vestros_fw-la &_o mentes_fw-la vestras_fw-la dubitatio_fw-la de_fw-la rebus_fw-la non_fw-la dum_fw-la praestitis_fw-la zanch._n and_o foundation_n your_o hope_n be_v build_v and_o so_o may_v be_v free_v from_o doubt_n about_o the_o thing_n hope_v for_o and_o how_o be_v this_o attain_v the_o eye_n of_o your_o understanding_n be_v enlighten_v v._o 18._o it_o be_v by_o the_o spirit_n clear_v and_o brightn_v of_o the_o understanding_n and_o indue_a that_o with_o supernatural_a light_n to_o know_v those_o thing_n which_o natural_o it_o can_v not_o know_v the_o spirit_n raise_v heighn_v and_o strengthen_v the_o soul_n apprehension_n of_o divine_a thing_n by_o dart_v in_o spiritual_a light_n and_o thus_o it_o attain_v a_o revelation_n knowledge_n and_o persuasion_n of_o call_v so_o psal_n 36.9_o not_o in_o the_o light_n of_o our_o own_o understanding_n but_o in_o thy_o light_n i_o e._n in_o divine_a light_n we_o shall_v see_v light_a if_o thy_o spirit_n give_v we_o the_o light_n of_o knowledge_n than_o we_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o see_v what_o come_v from_o the_o father_n of_o light_n or_o have_v a_o divine_a stamp_n or_o impress_v upon_o it_o and_o to_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o light_n and_o darkness_n we_o shall_v see_v light_a and_o often_o the_o prophet_n beg_v for_o irradiation_n psal_n 31.16_o &_o 67._o 1._o &_o 80.3.7.19_o &_o 119._o v._o 135._o cause_o thy_o face_n to_o shine_v and_o hence_o 2_o corin._n 4._o v._n 4.6_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v say_v to_o shine_v in_o our_o heart_n to_o give_v we_o a_o knowledge_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n in_o the_o face_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o these_o ir●●diations_n a_o soul_n be_v enable_v to_o see_v the_o mind_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n and_o to_o compare_v its_o condition_n with_o and_o right_o to_o judge_v thereof_o by_o that_o perfect_a rule_n of_o righteousness_n 2._o the_o spirit_n witness_v as_o by_o operation_n within_o so_o also_o by_o a_o write_a word_n without_o this_o do_v contribute_v much_o to_o assurance_n the_o word_n declare_v 1._o that_o such_o a_o testimony_n be_v attaineable_a and_o that_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o witness_n rom._n 8.16_o 1_o joh._n 5._o v._n 8.10_o 2._o what_o those_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v which_o do_v evidence_n adoption_n as_o faith_n joh._n 1.12_o it_o give_v description_n of_o faith_n and_o other_o grace_n and_o open_v the_o nature_n property_n and_o effect_n of_o these_o or_o discover_v what_o operation_n a_o witness_v work_n have_v upon_o the_o heart_n of_o those_o that_o be_v real_a injoyer_n of_o it_o whereby_o a_o man_n may_v discern_v whither_o those_o work_n he_o have_v find_v be_v of_o the_o right_a stamp_n real_a and_o not_o counterfeit_a special_a and_o not_o common_a 3._o what_o the_o way_n and_o mean_n be_v whereby_o these_o work_n may_v become_v witness_v 4._o what_o application_n of_o a_o word_n do_v make_v it_o witness_v yet_o not_o the_o word_n alone_o but_o that_o in_o conjunction_n with_o the_o irradiation_n and_o other_o operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n do_v witness_v adoption_n if_o the_o spirit_n witness_v by_o a_o reflection_n upon_o act_n of_o faith_n the_o word_n afford_v this_o proposition_n towards_o it_o he_o that_o believe_v shall_v be_v save_v mark_n 16.16_o the_o second_o proposition_n be_v but_o i_o believe_v now_o towards_o this_o the_o word_n tell_v we_o what_o faith_n be_v and_o the_o spirit_n work_v and_o act_v faith_n in_o we_o and_o by_o its_o irradiation_n help_v we_o to_o see_v it_o in_o ourselves_o and_o to_o say_v yet_o i_o believe_v and_o then_o the_o conclusion_n follow_v from_o the_o word_n therefore_o i_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o thus_o i_o have_v discover_v what_o this_o witness_v work_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v chap._n vi_o of_o the_o spirit_n witness_v to_o the_o soul_n its_o adoption_n and_o that_o first_o immediate_o by_o itself_o prove_v by_o four_o argument_n qu._n 2._o how_o do_v the_o spirit_n witness_v to_o a_o soul_n its_o adoption_n ans_fw-fr 1._o more_o immediate_o by_o itself_o 2._o by_o water_n 3._o by_o blood_n 1_o joh._n 5_o 8._o ans_fw-fr 1._o the_o spirit_n witness_v more_o immediate_o by_o itself_o i_o say_v by_o itself_o not_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o write_a word_n but_o to_o distinguish_v this_o way_n of_o witness_v from_o those_o by_o water_n and_o blood_n 1_o joh._n 5.8_o it_o be_v the_o concurrence_n of_o the_o spirit_n with_o these_o that_o make_v they_o witness_v to_o we_o efficient_o but_o beside_o the_o spirit_n have_v a_o more_o immediate_a testimony_n of_o its_o own_o which_o it_o afford_v to_o some_o believer_n whereby_o they_o be_v fill_v with_o satisfaction_n about_o their_o adoption_n sometime_o when_o they_o be_v gasp_v after_o communion_n with_o christ_n the_o spirit_n give_v they_o such_o sweet_a unexpressible_a heart-enamouring_a soul-ravishing_a manifestation_n of_o itself_o and_o of_o divine_a love_n as_o effectual_o overcome_v they_o into_o a_o undoubted_a persuasion_n thereof_o ordinary_o the_o spirit_n make_v use_v of_o the_o write_a word_n in_o this_o way_n of_o witness_v he_o make_v the_o word_n without_o a_o voice_n within_o by_o the_o effectual_a application_n of_o it_o unto_o a_o particular_a soul_n or_o if_o it_o be_v not_o by_o a_o express_a word_n yet_o it_o be_v by_o some_o scriptural_a consideration_n or_o in_o or_o present_o after_o wait_v upon_o the_o lord_n in_o way_n of_o his_o own_o appointment_n by_o the_o word_n as_o prayer_n it_o may_v be_v for_o the_o very_a mercy_n of_o assurance_n etc._n etc._n and_o so_o it_o be_v not_o proper_o a_o immediate_a revelation_n because_o in_o the_o use_n of_o mean_n it_o may_v seem_v very_o improper_a to_o call_v it_o immediate_a and_o yet_o assert_v it_o to_o be_v by_o the_o word_n but_o the_o expression_n may_v be_v bear_v withal_o 1._o because_o the_o spirit_n have_v such_o a_o eminent_a stroke_n here_o and_o do_v more_o eminent_o manifest_v its_o own_o presence_n in_o this_o then_o in_o the_o other_o way_n of_o witness_v here_o it_o witness_v not_o in_o a_o discursive_a way_n by_o deduce_a conclusion_n from_o premise_n but_o the_o spirit_n ●●●●●eth_v the_o soul_n and_o thereby_o work_v it_o into_o the_o persuasion_n by_o a_o direct_a act_n without_o any_o necessary_a reflection_n upon_o work_n former_o wrought_v within_o it_o effectual_o cause_v the_o soul_n to_o believe_v its_o adoption_n 2._o because_o the_o scripture_n be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o be_v the_o very_a breath_n of_o the_o spirit_n 2_o tim._n 3.16_o all_o scripture_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o divine_a breathe_n or_o inspiration_n man_n be_v say_v immediate_o to_o speak_v unto_o one_o another_o when_o they_o use_v word_n to_o each_o other_o face_n to_o face_n now_o the_o scripture_n be_v but_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o spirit_n 3._o because_o i_o use_v the_o word_n immediate_a to_o distinguish_v this_o from_o the_o other_o way_n of_o witness_v now_o that_o beside_o the_o spirit_n witness_v by_o water_n i_o e._n sanctification_n and_o by_o blood_n i._n e._n justification_n there_o be_v such_o a_o distinct_a way_n of_o witness_v it_o may_v appear_v upon_o these_o ground_n arg._n 1._o from_o the_o apostle_n ascribe_v it_o to_o the_o spirit_n himself_o rom._n 8.16_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v proper_a to_o say_v that_o a_o man_n do_v that_o which_o his_o substitute_n or_o servant_n do_v by_o his_o appointment_n 453._o not_o the_o spirit_n but_o the_o spirit_n himself_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v witness_n as_o every_o effect_n be_v a_o witness_n of_o its_o cause_n but_o the_o spirit_n himself_o do_v it_o say_v the_o text._n symonds_n desert_v soul_n case_n and_o cure_n pag._n 453._o a_o lord_n do_v many_o time_n by_o his_o steward_n but_o if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o such_o a_o man_n himself_o have_v perform_v any_o work_n that_o argue_v his_o do_v it_o in_o his_o own_o
person_n and_o not_o by_o another_o so_o if_o it_o be_v only_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o spirit_n witness_v than_o it_o may_v be_v by_o a_o proxy_n gift_n and_o grace_n but_o see_v it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o spirit_n himself_o this_o argue_v it_o to_o be_v a_o peculiar_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n require_v its_o own_o more_o immediate_a presence_n i'faith_o which_o be_v a_o grace_n may_v receive_v the_o testimony_n but_o the_o spirit_n give_v it_o and_o not_o grace_n in_o his_o stead_n else_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v himself_o proper_o but_o grace_n for_o he_o as_o water_n i_o e._n sanctification_n be_v call_v a_o witness_n 1_o joh._n 5.8_o when_o grace_n testisie_n although_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n that_o cause_v they_o to_o do_v it_o yet_o the_o grace_n have_v the_o denomination_n for_o the_o witness_n so_o here_o the_o spirit_n himself_o be_v the_o witness_n rather_o than_o grace_n though_o grace_n may_v be_v use_v about_o this_o as_o the_o spirit_n be_v about_o the_o other_o and_o hence_o after_o the_o apostle_n have_v tell_v they_o of_o the_o usefulness_n of_o mortification_n and_o conduct_n v._o 13_o 14._o for_o the_o clear_n up_o of_o justification_n and_o adoption_n yet_o he_o foresee_v that_o they_o may_v question_v their_o enjoyment_n of_o these_o as_o well_o as_o their_o justification_n therefore_o he_o add_v this_o as_o the_o high_a mean_n for_o knowledge_n which_o may_v hold_v when_o all_o other_o fail_v the_o spirit_n himself_o argu._n 2._o from_o the_o aptitude_n of_o many_o write_a word_n or_o promise_n by_o application_n to_o witness_v i_o account_v it_o very_o unsafe_a to_o draw_v up_o such_o conclusion_n from_o a_o scripture_n cast_v in_o as_o it_o have_v no_o natural_a tendency_n to_o enforce_v neither_o in_o its_o scope_n or_o sense_n direct_o nor_o by_o consequence_n neither_o in_o the_o letter_n of_o it_o nor_o by_o application_n this_o mistake_n too_o many_o labour_n under_o in_o these_o day_n when_o they_o be_v dubious_a about_o what_o be_v their_o duty_n if_o a_o word_n come_v into_o their_o mind_n although_o it_o tend_v not_o to_o resolve_v the_o doubt_n look_v not_o the_o least_o that_o way_n yet_o that_o word_n be_v make_v a_o rule_n for_o action_n and_o the_o decider_n of_o the_o controversy_n whereas_o if_o it_o be_v apply_v by_o the_o spirit_n it_o be_v intend_v for_o some_o other_o use_n or_o end_n and_o not_o for_o the_o determination_n of_o a_o matter_n which_o be_v no_o way_n concern_v in_o that_o scripture_n for_o the_o spirit_n do_v not_o speak_v bare_o in_o letter_n syllable_n or_o word_n of_o scripture_n but_o as_o these_o express_a thing_n which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o christ_n a_o man_n may_v be_v profane_a and_o yet_o use_v the_o word_n of_o scripture_n and_o satan_n often_o come_v with_o a_o it_o be_v write_v matth._n 4.6_o but_o there_o be_v many_o scripture_n of_o a_o witness_v nature_n which_o can_v be_v deny_v this_o use_n here_o be_v two_o thing_n to_o be_v confirm_v 1._o that_o there_o be_v a_o aptitude_n in_o some_o scripture_n to_o witness_v 2._o that_o the_o spirit_n do_v make_v application_n of_o these_o and_o that_o for_o such_o end_n 1._o that_o there_o be_v a_o aptitude_n in_o some_o scripture_n to_o witness_v or_o that_o they_o miss_v only_a application_n from_o the_o divine_a spirit_n to_o make_v they_o witness_v to_o a_o particular_a soul_n i_o shall_v give_v a_o few_o instance_n among_o many_o for_o the_o clear_n this_o truth_n isai_n 41.10_o fear_v not_o for_o i_o be_o with_o thou_o i_o be_o thy_o god_n isai_n 43._o v._n 25._o i_o even_o i_o be_o be_v that_o blot_v out_o thy_n transgression_n for_o my_o own_o sake_n i_o will_v not_o remember_v thy_o sin_n matth._n 9.2_o son_n be_v of_o good_a cheer_n thy_n sin_n be_v for_o give_v thou_o neither_o be_v this_o mean_v as_o to_o the_o present_a disease_n only_o for_o christ_n intend_v to_o give_v other_o a_o knowledge_n hereby_o of_o his_o power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n as_o v._o 6._o so_o ezek._n 36.25_o i_o will_v sprinkle_v clean_a water_n upon_o you_o ver_fw-la 26._o a_o new_a heart_n will_v i_o give_v you_o ver_fw-la 27._o i_o will_v put_v my_o spirit_n within_o you_o ver_fw-la 28._o i_o will_v be_v your_o god_n sure_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o speak_v in_o such_o a_o particular_a way_n to_o man_n thy_o god_n and_o thy_n sin_n if_o he_o intend_v not_o their_o particular_a assurance_n by_o the_o application_n of_o such_o word_n of_o the_o thing_n speak_v and_o that_o either_o of_o these_o have_v a_o aptitude_n to_o witness_v adoption_n be_v undeniable_a what_o can_v satisfy_v a_o soul_n if_o this_o will_v not_o for_o the_o lord_n to_o say_v i_o be_o thy_o god_n 41.10_o be_v 41.10_o if_o the_o spirit_n do_v but_o speak_v this_o over_o again_o to_o our_o spirit_n it_o be_v enough_o and_o to_o clear_v it_o further_o 1._o there_o be_v many_o assure_v promise_n of_o special_a mercy_n which_o be_v consequential_a to_o adoption_n now_o these_o must_v needs_o have_v a_o aptitude_n by_o application_n to_o give_v assurance_n of_o our_o interest_n in_o that_o which_o it_o a_o necessary_a antedent_n as_o isai_n 41.10_o i_o will_v strengthen_v thou_o i_o will_v uphold_v thou_o 2_o cor._n 12.9_o my_o grace_n be_v sufficient_a for_o thou_o heb._n 13.5_o i_o will_v never_o leave_v thou_o nor_o forsake_v thou_o 2._o there_o be_v many_o scripture_n that_o direct_o tend_v to_o remove_v the_o ground_n of_o a_o soul_n doubt_v of_o its_o adoption_n as_o if_o it_o question_v its_o interest_n in_o christ_n because_o it_o be_v exercise_v with_o such_o heavy_a affliction_n these_o scripture_n tend_v to_o remove_v that_o doubt_n heb._n 12.6_o who_o the_o lord_n love_v be_v chasten_v rev._n 3.19_o as_o many_o as_o i_o love_v i_o rebuke_v and_o chasten_v if_o the_o variety_n or_o violence_n of_o temptation_n which_o it_o have_v meet_v withal_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o its_o doubt_n it_o may_v find_v relief_n from_o heb._n 2.18_o &_o hebr._n 4.15_o christ_n be_v in_o all_o point_v tempt_v like_a as_o we_o be_v yet_o without_o sin_n he_o be_v free_a from_o sin_n yet_o be_v not_o free_a from_o temptation_n and_o so_o christian_n may_v not_o look_v for_o exemption_n from_o temptation_n who_o abound_v with_o sin_n yea_o it_o be_v express_o say_a we_o be_v tempt_v if_o the_o feel_n strong_a working_n of_o corruption_n put_v the_o soul_n upon_o question_v its_o condition_n that_o may_v minister_v help_n that_o paul_n a_o eminent_a saint_n groan_v under_o the_o same_o burden_n rom._n 7.15_o yea_o he_o cry_v out_o with_o bitter_a lamentation_n ver_fw-la 24._o o_o wretched_a man_n that_o i_o be_o who_o shall_v deliver_v i_o from_o the_o body_n of_o this_o death_n and_o thus_o many_o scripture_n have_v a_o aptitude_n to_o witness_v for_o it_o be_v their_o proper_a effect_n when_o apply_v by_o the_o spirit_n to_o remove_v such_o doubt_n of_o divine_a love_n as_o arise_v from_o such_o cause_n which_o oftentimes_o be_v the_o only_a obstacle_n in_o the_o way_n to_o assurance_n 2._o that_o the_o spirit_n do_v make_v application_n of_o such_o scripture_n unto_o particular_a soul_n and_o that_o for_o such_o end_n may_v appear_v 1._o from_o their_o aptitude_n to_o witness_n that_o word_n isui_n 41.10_o i_o be_o thy_o god_n bring_v in_o god_n as_o speak_v to_o a_o particular_a soul_n and_o tell_v it_o of_o its_o interest_n in_o himself_o it_o have_v a_o witness_v voice_n in_o the_o very_a letter_n of_o it_o and_o so_o carry_v evidence_n with_o it_o that_o this_o be_v its_o proper_a design_n and_o that_o the_o spirit_n do_v apply_v word_n for_o the_o proper_a end_n they_o so_o clear_o point_v at_o be_v undeniable_a especial_o when_o the_o thing_n point_v at_o be_v undoubted_o a_o work_n of_o the_o divine_a spirit_n as_o witness_v be_v 2._o from_o a_o parity_n of_o reason_n the_o spirit_n appli_v other_o word_n for_o those_o end_n which_o they_o apt_o serve_v to_o none_o will_v deny_v but_o that_o it_o may_v and_o do_v reprove_v decline_v christian_n for_o leave_v their_o first_o love_n by_o such_o a_o word_n as_o that_o revel_n 2._o v._n 3.4.11_o or_o threaten_v lukewarm_a soul_n by_o revel_n 3.16_o or_o convince_v carnal_o confident_a soul_n of_o the_o sadness_n of_o their_o condition_n by_o revel_n 3._o five_o 17.22_o and_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n it_o shall_v apply_v the_o aforementioned_a scripture_n in_o a_o witness_v way_n unto_o doubt_v soul_n and_o hence_o when_o david_n be_v besiege_v and_o surround_v on_o every_o side_n with_o trouble_n and_o the_o lord_n seem_v to_o keep_v silence_n he_o even_o put_v word_n into_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n psal_n 35.3_o say_v thou_o i._n e._n by_o thy_o spirit_n in_o some_o word_n or_o promise_n for_o this_o
he_o be_v unite_v to_o christ_n adopt_a justify_v &_o c_o sure_o a_o certainty_n of_o faith_n can_v be_v obtain_v of_o this_o because_o it_o be_v unwritten_a answ_n the_o soul_n may_v have_v a_o certainty_n about_o this_o as_o well_o as_o other_o act_n of_o faith_n if_o it_o be_v in_o a_o fit_a capacity_n to_o judge_v of_o any_o and_o due_o consider_v all_o requisite_n unto_o the_o specificate_a of_o a_o act_n of_o faith_n and_o all_o the_o ingredient_n or_o concur_v act_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o apply_v of_o such_o a_o promise_n and_o the_o better_a to_o evince_v this_o and_o answer_v the_o objection_n i_o shall_v lay_v down_o three_o thing_n which_o will_v much_o conduce_v to_o clear_v this_o coast_n 1._o the_o act_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v a_o clear_a evidence_n of_o its_o be_v of_o the_o right_a stamp_n than_o the_o object_n a_o man_n may_v have_v a_o right_a object_n for_o his_o faith_n &_o yet_o not_o have_v a_o right_a act_n about_o that_o object_n his_o faith_n can_v witness_v nothing_o thus_o joh._n 2.23_o many_o believe_v in_o christ_n name_n here_o be_v the_o right_a object_n of_o faith_n as_o you_o may_v see_v joh._n 1.12_o and_o yet_o their_o faith_n be_v vain_a v._o 24_o 25._o and_o no_o evidence_n so_o joh._n 8.30_o 31._o they_o believe_v on_o christ_n and_o yet_o they_o have_v not_o god_n but_o the_o devil_n for_o their_o father_n v._o 34_o 39.44_o so_o act._n 8._o v._n 13._o yea_o jam._n 2.19_o the_o devil_n believe_v that_o there_o be_v one_o god_n and_o tremble_v and_o the_o apostle_n declare_v this_o purposely_o to_o prove_v the_o defectivenes_n of_o faith_n though_o it_o may_v have_v a_o scriptural_a object_n a_o man_n may_v put_v forth_o but_o a_o natural_a act_n about_o a_o supernatural_a object_n may_v have_v but_o a_o humane_a faith_n about_o divine_a thing_n 1_o cor._n 2.5_o there_o be_v more_o require_v unto_o the_o specificate_a of_o true_a faith_n than_o this_o that_o there_o be_v a_o credit_v or_o assent_v to_o what_o be_v write_v now_o if_o the_o nature_n or_o quality_n of_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n be_v considerable_a and_o must_v be_v discern_v before_o sonship_n can_v be_v conclude_v from_o it_o then_o see_v those_o difference_v thing_n about_o the_o act_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o that_o faith_n which_o be_v draw_v out_o in_o the_o application_n of_o witness_v word_n hence_o a_o man_n be_v no_o more_o liable_a to_o be_v deceive_v in_o this_o then_o in_o other_o act_n of_o faith_n 2._o the_o scripture_n declare_v such_o as_o do_v right_o believe_v to_o be_v adopt_v and_o justify_v and_o determine_v what_o faith_n be_v joh._n 1.12_o rom._n 5.1_o act._n 13.39_o by_o he_o all_o that_o believe_v be_v justify_v and_o the_o give_v such_o a_o characteristical_a note_n must_v needs_o be_v a_o particularise_v of_o they_o as_o well_o as_o if_o the_o lord_n shall_v call_v they_o by_o name_n and_o say_v thou_o john_n thomas_n thou_o be_v justify_v or_o adopt_a if_o legacy_n be_v give_v though_o their_o name_n which_o they_o be_v give_v to_o be_v not_o express_o mention_v in_o the_o will_n yet_o a_o distinguish_a character_n be_v equivalent_a to_o a_o name_n of_o they_o so_o faith_n be_v make_v a_o character_n of_o adopt_a one_o and_o so_o it_o be_v write_v and_o by_o good_a consequence_n it_o may_v be_v conclude_v from_o the_o word_n who_o be_v adopt_v 3._o the_o supervenient_a act_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o effectual_a application_n of_o a_o word_n be_v enough_o to_o particularize_v it_o unto_o the_o soul_n and_o then_o the_o word_n itself_o be_v witness_v it_o be_v not_o where_o write_v in_o scripture_n in_o express_a term_n that_o luther_n or_o calvin_n shall_v be_v raise_v up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n yet_o see_v the_o general_a word_n about_o the_o resurrection_n do_v include_v all_o particular_n under_o they_o hence_o it_o be_v not_o improper_a to_o say_v it_o be_v write_v that_o they_o shall_v rise_v again_o but_o though_o the_o scripture_n say_v it_o yet_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n application_n of_o those_o general_a word_n that_o cause_v they_o to_o believe_v their_o own_o resurrection_n it_o be_v not_o where_o write_v that_o this_o or_o that_o person_n shall_v believe_v or_o that_o he_o shall_v have_v conviction_n or_o supportment_n etc._n etc._n by_o this_o or_o that_o sermon_n or_o that_o this_o scripture_n shall_v be_v useful_a to_o these_o end_n to_o one_o soul_n and_o another_o scripture_n for_o the_o same_o end_n to_o another_o etc._n etc._n but_o there_o be_v some_o special_a operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n necessary_a and_o hereby_o a_o general_a call_n be_v make_v particular_a and_o so_o this_o soul_n believe_v on_o christ_n when_o many_o that_o hear_v the_o same_o sermon_n and_o by_o the_o write_a word_n have_v a_o call_n as_o well_o as_o he_o yet_o believe_v not_o and_o hence_o many_o scripture_n be_v press_v that_o have_v a_o direct_a tendency_n to_o work_v a_o conviction_n upon_o a_o man_n and_o prevail_v not_o but_o as_o last_v one_o word_n be_v single_v out_o and_o work_v mighty_o that_o way_n at_o the_o same_o word_n act._n 17._o some_o mock_v v._o 32._o other_o believe_v v._o 34._o &_o hence_o many_o word_n suitable_a to_o a_o soul_n condition_n may_v be_v view_v and_o yet_o be_v not_o succour_v and_o at_o last_o one_o cull_v out_o from_o rest_n afford_v much_o relief_n to_o it_o all_o which_o do_v abundant_o evidence_n that_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v sufficient_a to_o particularize_v a_o word_n to_o a_o soul_n and_o that_o the_o spirit_n be_v ordinary_o afford_v for_o such_o end_n no_o soul_n be_v convert_v but_o there_o be_v such_o a_o appropriate_a of_o gospel_n invitation_n to_o it_o and_o the_o like_a concurrence_n of_o the_o spirit_n with_o some_o word_n will_v make_v they_o witness_v which_o make_v those_o convince_a convert_v support_v &c._n &c._n and_o the_o testimony_n will_v be_v as_o scriptural_a as_o any_o of_o those_o other_o work_n which_o be_v frequent_o wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n as_o all_o grant_n and_o see_v in_o those_o testify_a act_n by_o a_o word_n the_o spirit_n operate_v as_o efficacious_o and_o usual_o in_o a_o more_o eminent_a way_n then_o at_o other_o time_n hence_o they_o be_v as_o visible_a and_o act_n of_o faith_n here_o as_o evident_a as_o about_o other_o word_n all_o which_o be_v lay_v together_o i_o can_v but_o reckon_v the_o assurance_n of_o salvation_n to_o be_v a_o certainty_n of_o faith_n the_o conclusion_n be_v draw_v from_o scripture_n both_o direct_o and_o by_o consequence_n though_o the_o word_n alone_o do_v not_o witness_n yet_o by_o the_o spirit_n application_n of_o it_o to_o the_o soul_n it_o do_v and_o that_o must_v be_v by_o faith_n indeed_o the_o spirit_n proper_o can_v not_o be_v say_v to_o witness_v that_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n nor_o hardly_o be_v a_o witness_n at_o all_o if_o the_o testimony_n be_v not_o a_o certainty_n of_o faith_n and_o to_o be_v receive_v upon_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o revealer_n so_o as_o if_o it_o come_v from_o another_o as_o satan_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v own_v and_o hence_o 1_o joh._n 4.16_o we_o have_v know_n and_o believe_v the_o love_n that_o god_n have_v to_o we_o and_o it_o be_v a_o heinous_a sin_n not_o to_o give_v credit_n to_o it_o and_o that_o because_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o witness_n 1_o joh._n 5.9_o and_o heaven_n or_o eternal_a life_n be_v absolute_o promise_v unto_o all_o believer_n hebr._n 9.15_o that_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o his_o death_n they_o which_o be_v call_v may_v receive_v the_o promise_n of_o eternal_a inheritance_n jam._n 2.5_o joh._n 3.15_o that_o faith_n and_o hope_n be_v to_o act_v upon_o these_o as_o well_o as_o other_o word_n be_v undeniable_a what_o use_v else_o do_v they_o serve_v to_o and_o how_o else_o can_v those_o that_o be_v call_v receive_v they_o see_v gal._n 3._o v._n 18.22.29_o 1_o thes_n 5.8_o let_v we_o put_v on_o for_o a_o helmet_n the_o hope_n of_o salvation_n titus_n 1._o v._o 2._o in_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n which_o god_n that_o can_v lie_v promise_v whither_o this_o faith_n and_o hope_n be_v raise_v by_o a_o present_a particular_a application_n of_o the_o promise_n or_o by_o a_o reflection_n upon_o forego_v act_n of_o faith_n either_o way_n they_o must_v be_v divine_a because_o build_v and_o bottom_v upon_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n who_o can_v lie_v and_o if_o the_o latter_a way_n that_o strong_o prove_v that_o the_o interveen_n of_o reflex_n act_n can_v hinder_v assurance_n from_o be_v a_o certainty_n of_o divine_a faith_n i_o may_v give_v other_o secondary_a evidence_n of_o this_o immediate_a testimony_n as_o the_o soul_n be_v enable_v to_o discern_v many_o of_o its_o former_a experience_n at_o such_o
a_o time_n and_o many_o gracious_a effect_n be_v produce_v by_o it_o etc._n etc._n but_o these_o be_v more_o full_o open_v elsewhere_o especial_o under_o the_o general_a evidence_n object_n but_o many_o have_v have_v flash_n of_o joy_n in_o the_o reception_n of_o the_o word_n luk._n 8.13_o yea_o have_v be_v raise_v unto_o a_o high_a degree_n of_o hope_n and_o even_o a_o triumph_a joy_n who_o yet_o have_v be_v hypocrite_n job_n 8.13_o &_o 27.8_o job_n 20._o v._o 5._o and_o other_o have_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o holy-ghost_n and_o have_v taste_v of_o the_o heavenly_a gift_n &_o the_o good_a word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v and_o yet_o have_v be_v under_o delusion_n all_o this_o while_n hebr._n 6._o v._o 4_o 5_o 6._o how_o shall_v i_o discern_v that_o i_o go_v beyond_o these_o answ_n there_o be_v many_o thing_n already_o hint_v that_o will_v difference_n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n from_o such_o slash_n as_o these_o be_v but_o further_o 1._o the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n cause_n glorious_a transsormation_n into_o the_o image_n of_o the_o word_n delusion_n or_o common_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n leave_v without_o these_o a_o man_n may_v partake_v of_o the_o holy-ghost_n in_o the_o gift_n of_o it_o as_o saul_n do_v 1_o sam._n 10.10_o and_o yet_o no_o imprint_n of_o the_o word_n in_o the_o heart_n some_o one_o affection_n as_o joy_n may_v arise_v upon_o the_o reception_n of_o the_o word_n as_o matth._n 13.20_o 21._o and_o yet_o the_o word_n have_v no_o root_n mark_n 4.6_o the_o heart_n not_o be_v change_v into_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o but_o when_o the_o spirit_n work_v effectual_o by_o a_o word_n than_o there_o be_v a_o counterpane_n of_o the_o word_n in_o the_o heart_n and_o hence_o jerem._n 31.33_o hebr._n 8.10_o the_o lord_n do_v promise_v in_o the_o new_a covenant_n to_o write_v his_o word_n in_o their_o heart_n some_o principle_n and_o disposition_n or_o inclination_n be_v wrought_v within_o that_o have_v a_o lively_a resemblance_n in_o they_o unto_o the_o word_n 2_o corin._n 3.3.18_o we_o behold_v as_o in_o a_o glass_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v change_v into_o the_o same_o image_n from_o glory_n to_o glory_n even_o as_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n say_v mr_n forbes_n the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o wicked_a be_v like_o the_o smell_n of_o a_o apothecaris_n shop_n which_o one_o that_o pass_v by_o receive_v although_o he_o never_o carry_v any_o of_o these_o odoriferous_a thing_n with_o he_o but_o the_o witness_v of_o the_o spirit_n to_o the_o elect_n be_v by_o impart_v the_o thing_n witness_v to_o the_o soul_n and_o make_v it_o real_o to_o possess_v it_o so_o that_o if_o a_o man_n can_v see_v the_o soul_n of_o a_o true_a child_n of_o god_n he_o shall_v see_v engrave_v in_o it_o mercy_n peace_n love_n righteousness_n life_n joy_n and_o christ_n himself_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n be_v write_v therein_o according_a to_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n 2._o the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n have_v powerful_a operation_n in_o the_o heart_n towards_o the_o attainment_n of_o spiritual_a gospel_n end_v there_o the_o end_n any_o work_n drive_v at_o be_v a_o great_a discoverer_n what_o it_o be_v if_o a_o man_n be_v not_o light_o but_o effectual_o carry_v out_o after_o it_o the_o noise_n of_o heaven_n and_o happiness_n be_v take_v even_o with_o carnal_a heart_n many_o with_o the_o young_a man_n in_o the_o gospel_n matth._n 19_o v._n 16.22_o may_v be_v inquisitive_a after_o eternal_a life_n and_o have_v desire_n to_o enjoy_v it_o and_o take_v much_o pain_n to_o seek_v after_o it_o and_o be_v very_o sorrowful_a at_o the_o thought_n of_o miss_v of_o it_o and_o these_o imply_v some_o tastig_fw-mi of_o the_o heavenly_a gift_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v hebr._n 6._o v._o 4_o 5._o a_o man_n may_v be_v elevate_v with_o rapture_n of_o joy_n upon_o a_o suppose_a interest_n in_o heaven_n and_o all_o this_o may_v be_v but_o in_o a_o natural_a way_n like_o haman_n he_o may_v think_v who_o will_v the_o lord_n honour_n but_o myself_o esth_n 6._o v._n 6._o but_o with_o the_o young_a man_n he_o may_v mind_v earthly_a thing_n more_o than_o christ_n or_o eternal_a life_n ver_fw-la 21_o 22._o say_v forbes_n as_o a_o physician_n that_o have_v prepare_v a_o comfortable_a potion_n for_o the_o health_n of_o a_o belove_a patient_n he_o will_v give_v to_o other_o a_o little_a of_o it_o to_o make_v they_o apprehend_v the_o taste_n of_o it_o but_o not_o so_o as_o to_o have_v any_o strength_n to_o make_v any_o operation_n in_o the_o stomach_n so_o the_o lord_n may_v let_v some_o carnal_a man_n discern_v some_o goodness_n in_o christ_n and_o eternal_a life_n but_o these_o taste_n do_v not_o make_v they_o partaker_n of_o the_o refresh_a power_n of_o these_o they_o may_v be_v wrought_v into_o a_o great_a reformation_n and_o a_o glorious_a outward_a profession_n hereby_o but_o they_o have_v not_o such_o a_o operation_n as_o to_o cause_v their_o heart_n to_o mount_v up_o christ-ward_n and_o place_v their_o satisfaction_n in_o he_o alone_o but_o the_o speaking_n of_o the_o spirit_n make_v the_o soul_n cry_v out_o as_o cant._n 5.10_o 11._o my_o belove_a be_v white_a and_o ruddy_a the_o chief_a among_o ten_o thousand_o etc._n etc._n v._o 16._o he_o be_v altogether_o lovely_a a_o soul_n at_o such_o a_o day_n can_v but_o reckon_v christ_n the_o top_n of_o its_o glory_n and_o it_o can_v find_v no_o rest_n but_o in_o he_o and_o communion_n with_o he_o and_o the_o smile_n of_o his_o face_n all_o other_o thing_n be_v nothing_o to_o these_o in_o its_o account_n reall-tasts_a that_o the_o lord_n be_v gracious_a cause_n the_o soul_n to_o disrelish_v carnal_a delight_n and_o embitter_v those_o sweet_n to_o it_o say_v the_o soul_n shall_v i_o be_v take_v with_o the_o smile_n of_o creature_n be_v not_o the_o smile_a face_n of_o christ_n better_a shall_v i_o be_v drink_v with_o the_o sweet_a cup_n of_o worldly_a delight_n be_v not_o the_o wine_n in_o christ_n cellar_n better_a shall_v i_o feed_v upon_o ash_n after_o christ_n have_v lead_v i_o into_o his_o banquet_a house_n o_o no._n whither_o shall_v i_o go_v thou_o have_v the_o word_n of_o eternal_a life_n but_o i_o shall_v proceed_v to_o the_o other_o question_n chap._n fourteen_o show_v how_o a_o soul_n may_v know_v that_o the_o spirit_n have_v witness_v its_o adoption_n by_o blood_n qu_n 2._o how_o may_v a_o soul_n know_v that_o the_o spirit_n have_v witness_v its_o adoption_n by_o blood_n ans_fw-fr 1._o from_o the_o new_a covenant_n or_o the_o free_a promise_n we_o be_v not_o to_o think_v that_o there_o be_v a_o application_n of_o material_a blood_n but_o the_o gospel_n discover_v that_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v shed_v upon_o the_o cross_n be_v intend_v and_o be_v useful_a for_o justification_n redemption_n etc._n etc._n and_o offer_v it_o for_o such_o use_n and_o end_n unto_o particular_a soul_n the_o application_n of_o blood_n be_v by_o faith_n rom._n 3.25_o and_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v by_o a_o promise_n because_o faith_n ever_o must_v have_v a_o divine_a word_n to_o fasten_v upon_o and_o rom._n 10_o v._n 8.10_o the_o apostle_n check_v &_o reprove_v for_o such_o carnal_a apprehension_n as_o that_o we_o must_v clamber_v up_o to_o heaven_n for_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n no_o say_v he_o the_o lord_n reach_v it_o forth_o and_o make_v it_o nigh_o to_o we_o in_o or_o by_o the_o word_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o same_o word_n promise_v believer_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v save_v v._o 9_o so_o that_o a_o divine_a word_n be_v the_o instrument_n for_o the_o conveyance_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n unto_o soul_n and_o for_o their_o assurance_n of_o salvation_n thereby_o this_o be_v god_n deed_n of_o gift_n which_o they_o have_v to_o show_v for_o their_o right_n and_o title_n to_o that_o blood_n and_o all_o advantage_n that_o come_v by_o it_o and_o their_o acquittance_n or_o discharge_v from_o the_o debt_n they_o do_v owe_v to_o justice_n many_o be_v possess_v with_o apprehension_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o attain_v assurance_n of_o interest_n in_o that_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v fill_v with_o inward_a porplexity_n about_o it_o for_o want_v of_o consider_v the_o write_a word_n as_o the_o mean_n of_o conveyance_n whereas_o if_o the_o promise_n of_o it_o be_v you_o the_o blood_n in_o the_o several_a use_n it_o serve_v to_o be_v you_o also_o and_o that_o ought_v to_o satisfy_v you_o for_o there_o be_v a_o inseparable_a connexion_n between_o blood_n and_o the_o covenant_n heb._n 10._o v._o 16.19_o &_o 12._o v._o 24._o &_o 13._o v._o 20._o and_o your_o conclusion_n of_o interest_n
touchstone_n or_o rule_n for_o trial_n see_v isa_n 8.20_o to_o the_o law_n and_o to_o the_o testimony_n if_o they_o speak_v not_o according_a to_o this_o word_n it_o be_v because_o there_o be_v no_o light_n in_o they_o 1_o cor._n 14.37_o if_o any_o man_n think_v himself_o a_o prophet_n or_o spiritual_a let_v he_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o thing_n i_o write_v unto_o you_o be_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n act._n 17.11_o though_o the_o spirit_n do_v give_v evidence_n to_o itself_o especial_o in_o the_o more_o immediate_a way_n of_o witness_v and_o act_v so_o irresistible_o as_o the_o soul_n while_o that_o work_n continue_v can_v be_v otherwise_o persuade_v yet_o all_o the_o improvement_n of_o this_o immediate_a testimony_n be_v to_o be_v try_v by_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n i._n e._n both_o that_o faith_n which_o receive_v it_o and_o those_o effect_n that_o follow_v it_o or_o those_o operation_n it_o have_v in_o and_o upon_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o end_v it_o aim_v at_o if_o these_o be_v not_o according_a to_o the_o gospel_n account_v it_o a_o delusion_n though_o the_o persuasion_n be_v very_o strong_a isa_n 8.20_o gal._n 1._o v._n 7_o 8._o &_o 6._o v._o 16._o it_o be_v dangerous_a with_o zacharias_n from_o a_o unbelieved_a suspicion_n upon_o non_fw-fr scripturall_a ground_n to_o doubt_v yet_o it_o be_v a_o duty_n with_o mary_n for_o information_n to_o inquire_v how_o shall_v i_o know_v luk._n 1.18_o 19_o 20.34_o 35_o 38._o though_o your_o confidence_n continue_v yet_o you_o be_v to_o weigh_v they_o afterward_o in_o the_o balance_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n but_o that_o i_o may_v clear_o resolve_v the_o doubt_n i_o shall_v proceed_v by_o these_o step_n 1._o a_o power_n of_o judgement_n and_o discern_a or_o a_o certain_a knowledge_n whither_o any_o and_o what_o work_n have_v pass_v upon_o the_o heart_n be_v attaineable_a and_o ordinary_o grant_v unto_o soul_n this_o may_v appear_v 1._o from_o the_o lord_n require_v selfe-examination_n 2_o cor._n 13.5_o examine_v yourselves_o whither_o you_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n prove_v yourselves_o now_o what_o be_v that_o but_o to_o look_v into_o the_o heart_n and_o take_v a_o survey_n of_o that_o purposely_o to_o gain_v a_o knowledge_n what_o the_o state_n be_v this_o duty_n can_v be_v perform_v with_o fruit_n or_o advantage_n if_o there_o be_v not_o a_o possibility_n to_o be_v ascertain_v by_o inquire_v what_o the_o soul_n have_v meet_v withal_o and_o so_o the_o end_n of_o it_o will_v be_v lose_v so_o 1_o cor._n 11.31_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o heart_n be_v necessary_o require_v to_o make_v water_n or_o blood_n effectual_o witness_v for_o without_o that_o there_o be_v no_o ground_n for_o a_o act_n of_o judgement_n to_o pass_v upon_o 2._o from_o clear_a scripture_n 1_o cor._n 2._o v._n 12.15_o the_o spiritual_a man_n judge_v all_o thing_n ezek_n 16._o v._n 61._o 1_o cor._n 14.25_o and_o thus_o be_v the_o secret_n of_o his_o heart_n make_v manifest_a 3._o from_o experience_n christian_n that_o at_o some_o time_n through_o temptation_n be_v ready_a to_o deny_v such_o dispensation_n of_o god_n towards_o they_o yet_o at_o other_o time_n can_v make_v large_a narration_n of_o many_o passage_n they_o have_v meet_v withal_o they_o can_v declare_v how_o and_o in_o what_o manner_n the_o word_n have_v wrought_v within_o they_o and_o yet_o such_o soul_n under_o miserable_a questioning_n of_o their_o interest_n in_o christ_n still_o it_o be_v out_o of_o doubt_n with_o they_o and_o they_o be_v beyond_o question_v whither_o they_o have_v be_v under_o such_o working_n or_o no_o but_o here_o they_o stick_v they_o know_v not_o wither_v these_o be_v witnessing_n or_o not_o beware_v therefore_o of_o harbour_v any_o imagination_n that_o either_o the_o deceitfulness_n of_o thy_o own_o heart_n or_o the_o counterfeit_a working_n of_o satan_n shall_v render_v it_o impossible_a for_o thou_o to_o attain_v a_o knowledge_n of_o thy_o own_o heart_n or_o of_o what_o work_n have_v pass_v upon_o that_o this_o conceit_n raise_v by_o satan_n keep_v many_o a_o soul_n on_o this_o side_n assurance_n a_o great_a while_n 2._o the_o work_n that_o have_v pass_v upon_o thy_o heart_n be_v discern_v thou_o may_v examine_v and_o measure_v they_o by_o the_o write_a word_n whither_o they_o be_v special_a or_o common_a if_o thou_o be_v ready_a to_o doubt_v and_o question_v whither_o these_o be_v sufficient_a to_o testify_v adoption_n or_o not_o by_o renew_a recourse_n to_o the_o word_n thou_o may_v find_v what_o they_o be_v whether_o they_o be_v such_o as_o that_o call_v grace_n or_o not_o etc._n etc._n it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o chemic_n that_o they_o will_v so_o counterfeit_a gold_n that_o no_o touchstone_n can_v discover_v it_o satan_n have_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o chemistry_n he_o have_v many_o thing_n like_o grace_n as_o faith_n hope_n humility_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v not_o those_o grace_n and_o therefore_o it_o behove_v the_o most_o confident_a soul_n often_o to_o try_v their_o ground_n and_o here_o be_v a_o touchstone_n the_o write_a word_n that_o will_v never_o fail_v this_o will_v discover_v his_o most_o glister_a counterfeit_a coin_n 3._o a_o knowledge_n or_o real_a discern_v that_o those_o special_a work_n have_v pass_v upon_o the_o heart_n be_v enough_o to_o render_v infallible_o assure_v of_o the_o spirit_n witness_v or_o may_v give_v a_o certainty_n that_o a_o right_a judgement_n be_v pass_v upon_o the_o condition_n you_o may_v undoubted_o know_v that_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n which_o witness_v if_o you_o can_v clear_o see_v know_v or_o find_v that_o those_o work_n be_v wrought_v in_o your_o heart_n which_o be_v warrant_v in_o the_o write_a word_n to_o be_v witness_v for_o the_o spirit_n only_o can_v create_v they_o there_o and_o hence_o they_o be_v call_v fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n gal._n 5.22_o this_o be_v a_o great_a perplex_v thing_n to_o many_o a_o saint_n can_v it_o but_o see_v that_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o author_n of_o a_o work_n that_o it_o have_v be_v under_o than_o it_o can_v conclude_v of_o its_o adoption_n from_o it_o whereas_o there_o be_v common_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o a_o saul_n a_o judas_n a_o reprobate_n may_v have_v and_o therefore_o bare_o the_o proceed_n from_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o enough_o but_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o know_v that_o the_o work_n thou_o have_v experience_n of_o be_v a_o testimony_n as_o well_o as_o that_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o agent_n there_o be_v many_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o can_v be_v denominate_v testimony_n of_o adoption_n now_o for_o the_o spirit_n to_o bear_v witness_n plain_o import_v these_o two_o thing_n 1._o the_o give_v of_o a_o testimony_n 2._o that_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o giver_n of_o it_o if_o thou_o best_o wrought_v into_o a_o persuasion_n of_o adoption_n by_o the_o application_n of_o a_o word_n there_o be_v a_o testimony_n and_o if_o thou_o can_v find_v that_o the_o spirit_n have_v raise_v this_o that_o be_v sufficient_a and_o if_o blood_n be_v so_o apply_v as_o it_o be_v warrant_v to_o be_v a_o witness_n and_o so_o for_o water_n than_o the_o knowledge_n that_o they_o come_v from_o the_o spirit_n with_o that_o be_v evidence_v when_o work_n be_v of_o such_o a_o nature_n as_o they_o do_v witness_v adoption_n it_o be_v my_o scope_n and_o drift_n to_o discover_v in_o the_o forego_n question_n in_o those_o i_o have_v endeavour_v to_o difference_n the_o special_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n from_o those_o counterfeit_a work_n whereby_o satan_n and_o mens_fw-la own_o treachourous_a heart_n do_v prevail_v to_o the_o deceive_a of_o they_o as_o the_o spirit_n do_v evidence_n its_o own_o presence_n in_o the_o immediate_a way_n of_o witness_v so_o the_o special_a nature_n and_o quality_n of_o the_o work_n themselves_o may_v ascertain_v thou_o that_o they_o come_v from_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o testimony_n of_o water_n and_o blood_n if_o thou_o can_v descry_v those_o operation_n within_o thyself_o they_o may_v assure_v thou_o that_o the_o spirit_n be_v their_o author_n and_o that_o thy_o heart_n have_v not_o deceive_v thou_o in_o thy_o conclusion_n about_o thy_o adoption_n and_o hence_o 1_o joh._n 5.10_o he_o that_o beleive_v have_v the_o witness_n within_o himself_o some_o may_v inquire_v how_o shall_v we_o know_v that_o the_o spirit_n and_o none_o else_o be_v the_o witness_n to_o we_o the_o apostle_n answer_v he_o that_o beleive_v believe_a do_v evidence_n the_o inhabitation_n of_o the_o spirit_n if_o the_o ground_n of_o thy_o judgement_n be_v certain_a than_o the_o act_n of_o thy_o judgement_n must_v needs_o be_v infallible_a that_o be_v true_a or_o false_a according_a to_o the_o truth_n or_o falseness_n of_o the_o ground_n the_o act_n can_v be_v try_v without_o another_o act_n of_o judgement_n &_o so_o there_o will_v be_v no_o end_n and_o
then_o certainty_n be_v unattainable_a if_o the_o act_n be_v to_o be_v try_v for_o so_o long_o as_o there_o be_v any_o trial_n there_o be_v a_o act_n of_o judgement_n pass_v if_o thou_o find_v 1._o that_o some_o work_n have_v pass_v upon_o thy_o heart_n 2._o that_o they_o be_v such_o as_o be_v warrant_v to_o be_v witness_v the_o act_n of_o judgement_n be_v unquestionable_a from_o thy_o discern_a they_o thou_o may_v conclude_v that_o thou_o have_v the_o irradiation_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o none_o but_o the_o spirit_n can_v discover_v these_o 1_o cor._n 2._o v._n 10_o 11_o 12._o from_o the_o work_n discern_v thou_o may_v conclude_v the_o presence_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o thy_o own_o adoption_n 4._o if_o thou_o be_v in_o the_o dark_a or_o want_v clearness_n about_o the_o work_v themselves_o which_o former_o thy_o soul_n have_v be_v under_o thou_o be_v ever_o to_o beware_v at_o such_o a_o time_n of_o draw_v up_o conclusion_n about_o thy_o condition_n many_o have_v be_v ready_a to_o deny_v the_o grace_n of_o christ_n and_o have_v run_v their_o soul_n upon_o horrible_a temptation_n and_o into_o deep_a desertion_n and_o have_v give_v satan_n great_a advantage_n to_o rush_v they_o into_o unbelief_n by_o conclude_v upon_o the_o sight_n of_o halfe-work_n or_o without_o a_o clearness_n in_o the_o nature_n quality_n circumstance_n and_o end_n of_o what_o they_o have_v meet_v withal_o when_o the_o eye_n of_o thy_o soul_n be_v dim_a as_o in_o a_o day_n of_o desertion_n thou_o be_v not_o a_o competent_a judge_n but_o ought_v to_o attend_v unto_o other_o duty_n that_o concern_v thou_o in_o thy_o present_a condition_n and_o to_o wait_v for_o the_o shineing_n of_o the_o spirit_n upon_o the_o work_v thou_o have_v have_v experience_n of_o and_o if_o such_o a_o candle_n be_v light_v up_o in_o thy_o soul_n as_o enable_v thou_o to_o see_v and_o by_o the_o word_n to_o discern_v they_o to_o be_v special_a work_n than_o thou_o may_v say_v as_o rom._n 9.1_o my_o conscience_n bear_v i_o witness_v by_o the_o holyghost_n and_o then_o it_o be_v dangerous_a disclaim_n or_o disow_v the_o spirit_n in_o its_o operation_n 5._o it_o be_v the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o discover_v both_o the_o sincerity_n and_o the_o deceitfulness_n of_o the_o heart_n there_o be_v seed_n of_o hypocrifie_n as_o well_o as_o of_o other_o sin_n even_o in_o the_o best_a of_o saint_n they_o find_v matter_n for_o heart-breaking_a complaint_n of_o the_o treacherousnesse_n of_o their_o own_o heart_n grace_n do_v not_o tot_fw-mi ally_n destroy_v the_o be_v of_o any_o one_o sin_n peter_n heart_n deceive_v he_o when_o he_o be_v upon_o high_a resolve_n for_o christ_n and_o yet_o a_o believer_n but_o never_o do_v a_o soul_n see_v more_o of_o the_o deceitfulness_n of_o its_o heart_n then_o upon_o a_o discovery_n of_o divine_a love_n job_n 42.5_o 6._o isa_n 6.5_o ezek._n 16.63_o and_o thus_o he_o that_o will_v not_o be_v deceive_v shall_v not_o be_v leave_v to_o the_o deceitfulness_n of_o his_o own_o heart_n object_n 2._o but_o i_o have_v find_v that_o my_o heart_n have_v deceive_v i_o and_o i_o be_v mistake_v in_o my_o pass_v a_o judgement_n about_o other_o matter_n and_o i_o have_v as_o many_o symptom_n of_o my_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n into_o those_o conclusion_n as_o i_o have_v of_o its_o lead_v i_o into_o this_o and_o therefore_o i_o fear_v i_o be_o deceive_v in_o all_o answ_n 1._o thou_o may_v be_v deceive_v about_o some_o circumstance_n and_o the_o particular_a end_n of_o some_o dispensation_n and_o yet_o thy_o judgement_n may_v be_v right_a in_o the_o main_a 2._o particular_a mistake_n be_v not_o to_o be_v make_v general_a rule_n peter_n have_v a_o clear_a testimony_n of_o his_o adoption_n and_o that_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o christ_n himself_o mat._n 16._o v._n 17._o bless_a be_v thou_o simon_n and_o yet_o this_o do_v not_o preserve_v he_o from_o a_o delusion_n of_o satan_n that_o come_v afterward_o v._o 22_o 23._o the_o same_o mouth_n that_o bless_a he_o quick_o call_v he_o satan_n christ_n testimony_n be_v enough_o to_o give_v he_o full_a assurance_n of_o divine_a love_n but_o yet_o it_o do_v not_o secure_v he_o against_o a_o false_a confidence_n in_o a_o particular_a case_n nor_o a_o doleful_a fall_n matth._n 26._o v._n 35.70.72_o it_o thy_o heart_n have_v deceive_v thou_o in_o some_o particular_a thing_n yet_o do_v not_o conclude_v that_o thou_o be_v delude_v in_o all_o 3._o yet_o let_v thy_o mistake_n provoke_v thou_o to_o the_o great_a watchfulness_n against_o the_o delusion_n of_o satan_n and_o thy_o own_o spirit_n and_o take_v these_o as_o symptom_n of_o delusion_n and_o beware_v of_o yield_v to_o they_o 1._o whatsoever_o have_v a_o natural_a tendency_n to_o promote_v sin_n or_o unrighteousness_n be_v a_o delusion_n unholines_n can_v be_v from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o hence_o there_o be_v a_o diametrical_a opposition_n between_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n gal._n 5._o v._n 19_o 20.22_o that_o which_o embolden_v or_o give_v any_o encouragement_n or_o be_v refresh_v to_o corruption_n beware_v of_o it_o 2._o that_o which_o arise_v from_o or_o lead_v into_o security_n be_v a_o delusion_n rev._n 3.17.22_o they_o be_v rich_a and_o increase_v in_o good_n etc._n etc._n and_o now_o they_o conclude_v they_o want_v nothing_o but_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n tell_v they_o that_o they_o want_v all_o thing_n david_n security_n lead_v he_o into_o a_o false_a confidence_n psal_n 30.6_o from_o his_o present_a prosperity_n he_o conclude_v that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v move_v 3._o that_o which_o spring_v from_o a_o suppose_a selfe-sufficiency_n or_o in_o its_o own_o nature_n lead_v into_o selfe-advancement_n be_v a_o delusion_n psal_n 30.6_o david_n be_v confident_a he_o shall_v not_o be_v move_v and_o this_o be_v build_v and_o bottom_v upon_o his_o outward_a accommodation_n and_o furnishment_n for_o self-defence_n and_o therefore_o he_o check_v correct_v and_o recall_v himself_o v._o 7._o by_o thy_o favour_n my_o mountain_n stand_v strong_a so_o if_o thou_o have_v overcome_v this_o or_o that_o temptation_n and_o now_o conclude_v that_o thou_o be_v able_a to_o encounter_v with_o any_o it_o be_v but_o the_o voice_n of_o thy_o own_o spirit_n and_o it_o may_v be_v a_o small_a one_o will_v surprise_v thou_o quick_o and_o so_o if_o it_o tend_v to_o make_v thou_o aspire_v gen._n 3.5_o 4._o that_o which_o begin_v not_o with_o and_o end_v not_o in_o christ_n be_v a_o delusion_n peter_n engage_v for_o christ_n but_o not_o in_o the_o strength_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o he_o fall_v though_o not_o total_o yet_o shameful_o from_o christ_n the_o laodicean_n be_v neglective_a of_o christ_n and_o take_v satisfaction_n in_o thing_n below_o christ_n and_o this_o produce_v false_a confidence_n and_o conclusion_n rev._n 3.17_o 18.20_o object_n 3._o but_o may_v there_o not_o be_v some_o sin_n that_o i_o be_o ignorant_a of_o harbour_v in_o my_o soul_n that_o may_v render_v i_o deceive_v in_o pass_a judgement_n on_o my_o own_o condition_n may_v not_o my_o heart_n be_v engage_v to_o some_o secret_a sin_n that_o i_o know_v not_o of_o and_o so_o i_o not_o be_v marry_v unto_o christ_n answ_n be_v thy_o heart_n carry_v out_o to_o seek_v for_o cleanse_v through_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n from_o secret_a sin_n which_o thou_o know_v not_o of_o if_o so_o thou_o be_v not_o delude_v but_o even_o these_o motion_n of_o thy_o heart_n be_v witness_v the_o best_a of_o saint_n be_v subject_a to_o many_o secret_a sin_n psal_n 19.12_o who_o can_v understand_v his_o error_n cleanse_v thou_o i_o from_o secret_a fault_n the_o interrogation_n have_v the_o force_n of_o a_o negation_n i.e._n none_o can_v understand_v his_o error_n i.e._n all_o his_o sin_n and_o therefore_o he_o himself_o beg_v cleanse_v from_o those_o he_o know_v not_o of_o 8._o qui_fw-fr form_n aliter_fw-la &_o distincti_fw-la poenitentiam_fw-la agit_fw-fr de_fw-fr peccatis_fw-la omnibus_fw-la cognitis_fw-la virtualem_fw-la &_o confusam_fw-la resipiscentiam_fw-la habet_fw-la de_fw-la ijs_fw-la etiam_fw-la peccatis_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la novit_fw-la dr._n ames_n c._n c._n l._n 2._o cap._n 8._o so_o that_o if_o thou_o have_v such_o a_o knowledge_n of_o gosell_n mystery_n as_o thy_o whole_a heart_n be_v draw_v out_o after_o god_n in_o the_o way_n of_o the_o mediator_n christ_n jesus_n and_o be_v bend_v and_o set_v against_o all_o sin_n know_v upon_o gospel_n account_n and_o look_v after_o purification_n from_o what_o thou_o be_v ignorant_a of_o and_o will_v seek_v the_o mortification_n and_o abandon_v of_o they_o if_o thou_o know_v they_o &_o can_v cordial_o say_v as_o psal_n 139._o v._n 23_o 24._o search_v i_o o_o god_n and_o know_v my_o heart_n and_o see_v if_o there_o be_v any_o wicked_a way_n in_o i_o and_o
3._o at_o another_o time_n be_v again_o bring_v to_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o god_n after_o long_o shut_v up_o that_o of_o david_n come_v to_o mind_n i_o be_v as_o a_o wean_a child_n i_o be_v wean_v from_o all_o thing_n from_o repute_n among_o man_n from_o outward_a comfort_n etc._n etc._n and_o stay_v much_o upon_o the_o lord_n i_o apprehend_v it_o be_v the_o lord_n end_n in_o desertion_n to_o make_v way_n for_o establishment_n and_o to_o render_v unblameable_a before_o god_n and_o our_o father_n at_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n with_o all_o his_o saint_n finis_fw-la the_o content_n the_o word_n open_v and_o the_o point_n raise_v from_o page_n 1._o to_o p._n 7._o qu_n 1._o what_o be_v the_o witness_v work_n of_o the_o spirit_n ans_fw-fr it_o be_v a_o work_n whereby_o the_o spirit_n by_o some_o manifest_a and_o special_a act_n and_o operation_n of_o its_o own_o do_v raise_v a_o persuasion_n in_o a_o soul_n by_o the_o word_n or_o gospel_n of_o its_o adoption_n open_v in_o many_o particular_n from_o p._n 7._o to_o p._n 25._o qu_n 2._o how_o do_v the_o spirit_n witness_n to_o a_o soul_n its_o adoption_n ans_fw-fr 1._o the_o spirit_n witness_v more_o immediate_o by_o itself_o p._n 25._o that_o the_o spirit_n have_v such_o a_o distinct_a way_n of_o witness_v from_o water_n and_o blood_n be_v prove_v 1._o from_o the_o apostle_n ascribe_v it_o to_o the_o spirit_n himself_o p._n 27._o 2._o from_o the_o aptitude_n of_o many_o write_a word_n or_o promise_n by_o application_n to_o witness_v p._n 28._o 3._o from_o the_o number_n of_o witness_n which_o the_o gospel_n ow_v p._n 36._o 4._o from_o the_o experience_n of_o the_o saint_n p._n 38._o ans_fw-fr 2._o the_o spirit_n witness_v by_o water_n i_o e._n sanctification_n p._n 41._o prove_v diverse_a way_n qu_n whither_o a_o soul_n can_v enjoy_v any_o other_o testimony_n when_o sanctification_n lie_v dark_a p._n 45._o ans_fw-fr 3_o the_o spirit_n witness_v by_o blood_n i._n e._n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o useful_a to_o justification_n p._n 47._o qu._n 3._o who_o be_v capable_a of_o attain_v the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n p._n 50._o ans_fw-fr weak_a believer_n be_v capable_a of_o attain_v they_o several_a thing_n be_v premise_v and_o then_o it_o be_v prove_v 1._o from_o the_o spirit_n be_v give_v to_o all_o believer_n as_o a_o witness_n p._n 56._o 2._o from_o the_o extensivenesse_n of_o the_o promise_n p._n 59_o 3._o from_o clear_a scripture_n p._n 60._o 4._o from_o the_o lord_n require_v of_o they_o selfe-examination_n p._n 61._o qu._n 4._o how_o may_v a_o soul_n know_v whither_o it_o enjoy_v the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o not_o p._n 63._o qu._n 1._o how_o may_v a_o soul_n know_v whither_o the_o spirit_n have_v witness_v its_o adoption_n to_o it_o in_o that_o more_o immediate_a way_n p._n 64._o ans_fw-fr 1._o the_o spirit_n itself_o do_v primary_o evidence_n the_o proceed_n of_o its_o own_o witness_v act_n from_o itself_o p._n 67._o prove_v by_o diverse_a argument_n ans_fw-fr 2._o the_o secondary_a evidence_n of_o the_o more_o immediate_a testimony_n be_v faith_n p._n 81._o object_n when_o be_v a_o word_n receive_v by_o faith_n or_o when_o do_v faith_n evidence_n a_o testimony_n to_o be_v no_o delusion_n p._n 82._o answer_v in_o four_o particular_n to_o p._n 88_o prove_v that_o assurance_n be_v a_o certainty_n of_o divine_a faith_n from_o p._n 88_o to_o p._n 94._o how_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v difference_v from_o those_o flash_n of_o joy_n etc._n etc._n that_o unbeliever_n may_v have_v under_o the_o word_n from_o p._n 94._o to_o p._n 98._o qu_n 2._o how_o may_v a_o soul_n know_v that_o the_o spirit_n have_v witness_v its_o adoption_n by_o blood_n ans_fw-fr 1._o from_o the_o new_a covenant_n or_o free_a promise_n p._n 98._o 2._o from_o cordial_a act_n of_o faith_n p._n 99_o 3._o from_o its_o prefer_v that_o blood_n before_o all_o other_o thing_n p._n 102._o 4._o from_o the_o renuntiation_n of_o what_o soever_o stand_v in_o competition_n with_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o use_v it_o serve_v to_o p._n 104._o 5._o from_o its_o freeness_n in_o choose_v and_o accept_v of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n p._n 107._o 6._o from_o the_o strength_n of_o drawing_n that_o way_n p._n 110._o 7._o from_o its_o feeling_n the_o efficaciousnesse_n of_o that_o blood_n p._n 111._o qu._n 3._o how_o may_v a_o soul_n know_v that_o the_o spirit_n have_v witness_v its_o adoption_n by_o water_n i_o e._n sanctification_n p._n 112._o this_o question_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o qu_n 1._o how_o may_v a_o soul_n know_v that_o its_o heart_n be_v separate_v from_o sin_n or_o that_o sin_n have_v not_o dominion_n over_o it_o p._n 115._o four_o distinction_n be_v premise_v there_o be_v a_o difference_n 1._o between_o the_o indwel_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o reign_v of_o sin_n ibid._n 2._o between_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o tyranny_n of_o sin_n seven_o difference_n be_v lay_v down_o ibid._n 3._o between_o a_o habitual_a frame_n of_o heart_n towards_o sin_n and_o a_o occasional_a fall_n into_o sin_n p._n 117._o 4._o between_o infirmity_n and_o grosser_n enormity_n p._n 118._o what_o sin_n be_v to_o be_v reckon_v of_o infirmity_n answ_n sin_n have_v not_o dominion_n over_o a_o soul_n when_o it_o choose_v freedom_n from_o or_o consent_v with_o all_o its_o heart_n upon_o evangelicall_n account_v to_o part_v with_o sin_n p._n 121._o 1._o when_o the_o choice_n be_v free_a without_o coaction_n ibid._n 2._o when_o it_o be_v universal_a without_o limitation_n p._n 123._o 3._o when_o the_o choice_n be_v absolute_a without_o condition_n p._n 124._o 4._o when_o there_o be_v a_o conflict_n between_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o spirit_n p._n 125._o 5._o when_o there_o be_v a_o mortification_n of_o sin_n p._n 127._o 6._o when_o there_o be_v irreconciliable_a opposion_n against_o sin_n ibid._n 7._o when_o it_o be_v upon_o spiritual_a and_o evangelicall_n account_v p._n 128._o open_v in_o six_o particular_n to_o p._n 132._o 8._o when_o sin_n be_v in_o subjection_n p._n 132._o qu_n whither_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o retain_v assurance_n after_o fall_v into_o sin_n answer_v in_o five_o particular_n from_o p._n 134._o to_o p._n 137._o qu_n how_o may_v one_o know_v that_o his_o heart_n be_v separate_v to_o god_n and_o christ_n ans_fw-fr 1._o from_o his_o esteem_v of_o god_n and_o christ_n above_o all_o other_o thing_n p._n 137._o 2._o from_o his_o spend_v his_o high_a desire_n and_o endeavour_n after_o attain_v communion_n with_o god_n in_o christ_n p._n 138._o 3._o from_o his_o willingness_n to_o part_v with_o all_o other_o thing_n at_o christ_n call_n or_o for_o his_o sake_n p._n 139._o 4._o from_o the_o carriage_n of_o his_o heart_n under_o his_o withdrawing_n ibid._n 5._o from_o his_o enjoyment_n of_o the_o leading_n of_o the_o spirit_n ibid._n qu_n when_o do_v a_o soul_n enjoy_v the_o leading_n of_o the_o spirit_n answer_v in_o six_o particular_n from_o p._n 140._o to_o p._n 150._o ten_o secondary_a general_n evidence_n that_o a_o testimony_n of_o adoption_n be_v from_o the_o spirit_n from_o p._n 150._o to_o p._n 164._o four_o objection_n object_n 1._o see_v satan_n counterfeit_v the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o heart_n be_v so_o deceitful_a how_o shall_v i_o know_v that_o i_o have_v pass_v a_o right_a judgement_n on_o my_o condition_n answer_v from_o p._n 164._o to_o p._n 172._o object_n 2._o but_o my_o heart_n have_v deceive_v i_o in_o other_o matter_n and_o therefore_o i_o fear_v i_o be_o deceive_v in_o all_o answer_v from_o p._n 172._o to_o p._n 174._o where_o be_v lay_v down_o four_o symptom_n of_o delusion_n object_n 3._o but_o may_v there_o not_o be_v some_o sin_n i_o be_o ignorant_a of_o harbour_v in_o my_o soul_n that_o may_v render_v i_o deceive_v in_o pass_a judgement_n on_o my_o own_o condition_n answer_v from_o p._n 174_o to_o 176._o object_n 4._o but_o i_o have_v find_v a_o great_a impression_n by_o a_o word_n and_o i_o can_v tell_v whither_o it_o be_v from_o the_o spirit_n or_o satan_n what_o be_o i_o to_o do_v in_o this_o case_n answer_v from_o p._n 176._o to_o 178._o qu._n 5._o by_o what_o mean_n may_v the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v attain_v strengthen_v and_o preserve_v ans_fw-fr 1._o wait_v for_o the_o spirit_n p._n 178._o 2._o maintain_v a_o persuasion_n that_o it_o be_v thy_o duty_n to_o seek_v after_o they_o p._n 179._o 3._o beware_v of_o those_o thing_n that_o tend_v to_o keep_v off_o from_o assurance_n p._n 180._o 4._o be_v much_o in_o selfe-examination_n p._n 181._o 5._o be_v much_o in_o the_o observation_n of_o god_n deal_n with_o your_o own_o soul_n p._n 182._o 6._o be_v often_o renew_v act_n of_o faith_n ibid._n 7._o in_o all_o importunity_n with_o god_n for_o assurance_n make_v use_n of_o argument_n draw_v from_o god_n himself_o p._n 186._o 8._o see●e_v for_o much_o inward_a acquaintance_n with_o the_o write_a word_n p._n 187._o several_a rule_n about_o make_v use_n of_o scripture_n and_o about_o the_o hinting_n and_o giving_n in_o of_o word_n from_o p._n 188._o to_o p._n 195._o 9_o hold_v fost_v the_o doctrine_n of_o perseverance_n p._n 195._o finis_fw-la
the_o voice_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o a_o essay_n towards_o a_o discovery_n of_o the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n by_o open_v and_o answer_v these_o follow_a weighty_a query_n q._n 1._o what_o be_v the_o witness_v work_n of_o the_o spirit_n 2_o how_o do_v the_o spirit_n witness_v to_o a_o soul_n its_o adaption_n 3_o who_o be_v capable_a of_o attain_v the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n 4._o how_o may_v a_o soul_n know_v its_o enjoyment_n of_o they_o 5._o by_o what_o mean_n may_v a_o soul_n attain_v they_o to_o which_o be_v add_v rose_n from_o sharon_n or_o sweet_a experience_n reach_v out_o by_o christ_n to_o some_o of_o his_o beloved_a one_o in_o this_o wilderness_n by_o samuel_n petto_n preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n at_o sandcroft_n in_o suffolk_n isaiah_n 59_o 19_o when_o the_o enemy_n shall_v come_v in_o like_o a_o flood_n the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v lift_v up_o a_o standard_n against_o he_o london_n print_v for_o livewell_n chapman_n at_o the_o crown_n in_o popes-head-alley_n 1654._o to_o the_o saint_n and_o people_n of_o god_n in_o and_o about_o sandcroft_n grace_n and_o peace_n be_v multiply_v dear_o belove_v in_o the_o lord_n as_o jesus_n christ_n by_o the_o appointment_n of_o the_o father_n have_v purchase_v redemption_n bring_v in_o a_o everlasting_a righteousness_n and_o obtain_v eternal_a salvation_n for_o a_o certain_a number_n of_o the_o race_n of_o fall_v adam_n so_o the_o bless_a spirit_n be_v design_v by_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n not_o only_o to_o make_v application_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o bring_v soul_n into_o the_o relation_n of_o son_n and_o daughter_n thereby_o but_o also_o to_o bear_v testimony_n of_o their_o stand_n in_o that_o bless_a relation_n to_o encourage_v unto_o a_o wait_a for_o and_o to_o give_v a_o knowledge_n of_o the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o design_n of_o this_o treatise_n and_o now_o dear_a friend_n i_o beseech_v you_o rest_v not_o satisfy_v without_o a_o persuasion_n from_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n that_o god_n be_v your_o father_n give_v over_o carnal_a reason_n and_o give_v all_o diligence_n to_o make_v your_o call_v and_o election_n sure_a though_o you_o be_v under_o the_o hiding_n of_o god_n face_n at_o present_a 8.17_o isa_n 8.17_o yet_o wait_v for_o the_o light_n of_o his_o countenance_n and_o the_o issue_n will_v be_v glorious_a when_o joseph_n brethren_n be_v in_o their_o great_a distress_n than_o joseph_n make_v know_v himself_o to_o they_o gen._n 45._o v._n 1.3_o 4._o so_o when_o many_o charge_n and_o accusation_n be_v bring_v in_o against_o you_o and_o many_o seem_o hard_a passage_n be_v meet_v withal_o and_o that_o from_o christ_n himself_o and_o your_o heart_n be_v ready_a to_o sink_v down_o low_a &_o your_o fear_n to_o rise_v high_a yet_o then_o may_v your_o assurance_n be_v near_o christ_n your_o spiritual_a joseph_n as_o with_o reverence_n we_o may_v speak_v it_o will_v be_v able_a to_o refrain_v no_o long_o he_o can_v but_o cry_v out_o i_o be_o joseph_n your_o brother_n and_o if_o you_o enjoy_v a_o testimony_n of_o divine_a love_n at_o last_o you_o will_v not_o repent_v you_o of_o all_o your_o wait_a it_o will_v be_v as_o a_o cluster_n of_o grape_n from_o the_o celestial_a canaan_n that_o will_v give_v you_o a_o foreknowledge_n how_o good_a the_o land_n be_v this_o will_v sweeten_v your_o bitter_a cup_n and_o your_o worst_a condition_n to_o you_o this_o will_v be_v enough_o that_o god_n be_v your_o father_n your_o heart_n be_v now_o fearful_a of_o meddle_v with_o promise_n and_o this_o be_v the_o language_n of_o your_o soul_n it_o be_v true_a here_o be_v precious_a promise_n but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o we_o we_o know_v not_o whither_o we_o have_v any_o right_n to_o they_o or_o not_o such_o a_o testimony_n will_v assure_v you_o that_o all_o the_o promise_n be_v you_o because_o christ_n be_v you_o in_o who_o all_o the_o promise_n be_v yea_o and_o amen_n indeed_o when_o you_o want_v assurance_n yet_o it_o be_v your_o duty_n by_o faith_n to_o take_v hold_n of_o promise_n suitable_a to_o your_o condition_n but_o satan_n hinder_v oftentimes_o therein_o when_o you_o can_v see_v your_o interest_n in_o christ_n hereby_o also_o you_o will_v see_v your_o liberty_n for_o near_a approaching_n unto_o god_n and_o that_o with_o a_o holy_a boldness_n because_o he_o be_v your_o father_n and_o may_v hope_v of_o be_v successful_a in_o all_o your_o drawing_n near_o to_o he_o hereby_o you_o will_v have_v freedom_n from_o or_o establishment_n against_o many_o temptation_n which_o a_o doubt_a condition_n expose_v you_o to_o you_o will_v not_o be_v so_o ready_a to_o have_v hard_a thought_n of_o god_n or_o murmur_a discontent_a thought_n at_o his_o dispensation_n etc._n etc._n as_o you_o have_v be_v hereby_o you_o will_v be_v render_v thankful_a for_o your_o mercy_n whereas_o now_o you_o be_v apt_a to_o call_v the_o most_o special_a mercy_n common_a and_o that_o such_o a_o abundant_a entrance_n may_v be_v administer_v to_o you_o into_o the_o everlasting_a kingdom_n and_o that_o you_o may_v be_v fill_v with_o peace_n and_o joy_n in_o believe_v even_o joy_v unspeakable_a and_o full_a of_o glory_n shall_v be_v the_o prayer_n of_o he_o who_o be_v sandcroft_n 4_o more_o 20_o day_n 1654._o you_o in_o gospel_n engagement_n samuel_n petto_n to_o the_o christian_a reader_n the_o eternal_a decree_n of_o the_o great_a god_n about_o the_o everlasting_a state_n of_o soul_n in_o which_o they_o shall_v for_o ever_o abide_v after_o the_o number_n of_o our_o month_n be_v determine_v and_o that_o this_o body_n be_v seize_v upon_o by_o the_o king_n of_o torror_n be_v register_v in_o the_o book_n of_o god_n and_o to_o be_v open_v at_o the_o great_a day_n but_o at_o the_o present_a so_o hide_v that_o by_o all_o that_o be_v before_o we_o as_o that_o we_o can_v either_o know_v love_n or_o hat_v or_o what_o will_v be_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o judge_n of_o all_o the_o world_n upon_o a_o particular_a soul_n when_o he_o come_v to_o speak_v those_o irreversible_a word_n go_v you_o curse_v come_v you_o bless_v yet_o he_o that_o be_v worthy_a to_o open_v the_o book_n and_o unto_o who_o the_o father_n have_v commit_v all_o judgement_n even_o jesus_n our_o lord_n be_v it_o be_v that_o have_v send_v for_o that_o bless_a spirit_n which_o curious_o and_o exact_o survey_v the_o very_a bottom_n counsel_n of_o god_n to_o make_v report_n of_o and_o to_o witness_v unto_o soul_n the_o precious_a assurance_n of_o their_o adoption_n that_o so_o such_o as_o do_v believe_v may_v have_v consolation_n and_o hope_n and_o now_o a_o search_n after_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o language_n of_o that_o spirit_n and_o the_o whisper_n thereof_o whereby_o the_o soul_n be_v make_v acquaint_v with_o the_o secret_a of_o god_n must_v needs_o be_v a_o work_n worthy_a the_o utmost_a of_o our_o care_n and_o diligence_n and_o every_o beam_n of_o light_n tend_v to_o that_o end_n shall_v be_v answerable_o esteem_v of_o by_o we_o according_a to_o its_o issue_n which_o be_v so_o great_a even_o of_o eternal_a moment_n beside_o multitude_n there_o be_v bind_v up_o in_o darkness_n some_o on_o the_o one_o part_n lay_v claim_n to_o acquaintance_n with_o the_o spirit_n testimony_n who_o walking_n yet_o savour_v so_o rank_n of_o the_o flesh_n as_o they_o declare_v they_o sensual_a and_o delude_v other_o there_o be_v who_o not_o only_o have_v taste_v the_o spirit_n sweetness_n but_o by_o he_o have_v be_v make_v to_o drink_v into_o christ_n yet_o through_o over-elated_n thought_n and_o expectancy_n of_o the_o spirit_n witnessing_n much_o like_o the_o jew_n in_o their_o too_o much_o raise_v account_n of_o some_o pompous_a and_o extraordinary_a appear_v of_o the_o messiah_n regardless_o of_o those_o precious_a whisper_n of_o love_n which_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o promise_n hint_n to_o the_o soul_n make_v they_o still_o froward_a and_o dissatisfy_v with_o god_n as_o not_o count_v their_o prayer_n hear_v or_o their_o person_n regard_v because_o not_o extraordinary_o visit_v by_o the_o spirit_n the_o design_n and_o aim_v therefore_o of_o the_o author_n in_o this_o piece_n be_v to_o promote_v our_o understanding_n of_o the_o voice_n of_o that_o spirit_n and_o according_a to_o the_o grace_n give_v he_o to_o relieve_v and_o edify_v the_o weak_a and_o doubt_v and_o undeceive_v such_o as_o be_v delude_v we_o be_v persuade_v he_o have_v deal_v faithful_o both_o with_o christ_n and_o you_o in_o lay_v aside_o all_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o endeavour_v in_o the_o plainness_n and_o demonstration_n of_o that_o spirit_n which_o he_o be_v here_o treat_v of_o to_o speak_v home_o to_o either_o sort_n upon_o that_o short_a view_n we_o have_v of_o this_o work_n we_o have_v add_v our_o testimony_n to_o it_o not_o
because_o we_o think_v our_o name_n be_v any_o way_n worthy_a or_o can_v back_o the_o truth_n or_o that_o we_o intend_v the_o author_n commendation_n thereby_o we_o know_v he_o need_v it_o not_o where_o himself_o be_v know_v and_o his_o work_n we_o trust_v will_v approve_v he_o faithful_a with_o jesus_n christ_n only_o we_o aim_v at_o bear_v testimony_n to_o the_o truth_n and_o if_o it_o may_v be_v the_o encouragement_n of_o some_o poor_a soul_n further_a to_o ponder_v and_o consult_v what_o be_v here_o write_v reader_n consider_v and_o view_v it_o over_o and_o see_v if_o thou_o can_v find_v the_o book_n in_o thy_o heart_n and_o thy_o heart_n in_o that_o we_o believe_v when_o thou_o have_v peruse_v it_o through_o though_o thou_o miss_v spangle_n of_o eloquence_n yet_o thou_o will_v not_o account_v thy_o expense_n of_o time_n as_o to_o be_v thy_o loss_n grieve_v not_o that_o spirit_n by_o slight_v any_o piece_n that_o may_v familiarize_v his_o voice_n and_o language_n to_o thou_o here_o be_v question_n of_o moment_n flate_v open_v and_o in_o some_o measure_n clear_v up_o if_o thou_o meet_v with_o thy_o satisfaction_n give_v glory_n to_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n if_o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o gospel_n drop_v but_o from_o one_o leaf_n or_o line_n upon_o thy_o spirit_n in_o thy_o consult_v it_o thy_o pain_n be_v recompense_v now_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n may_v be_v redouble_v upon_o the_o author_n who_o have_v wage_v in_o this_o work_n and_o that_o thy_o profit_n who_o peruse_a it_o may_v be_v answerable_a to_o the_o desire_n and_o travail_n of_o his_o soul_n shall_v be_v the_o prayer_n of_o we_o who_o be_v mean_a among_o the_o saint_n who_o yet_o desire_v to_o approve_v ourselves_o faithful_a to_o christ_n his_o truth_n his_o interest_n and_o his_o people_n so_o we_o bid_v thou_o farewell_n grace_n be_v with_o thy_o spirit_n amen_n sam_n habergham_n edw._n barker_n 1._o day_n 4._o more_n 1654._o to_o the_o reader_n dear_a friend_n the_o plentiful_a pour_v out_o of_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o great_a privilege_n which_o be_v promise_v unto_o the_o latter_a day_n and_o therefore_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o duty_n of_o high_a concernment_n to_o seek_v for_o inward_a acquaintance_n with_o that_o bless_a spirit_n in_o all_o those_o way_n it_o be_v promise_v in_o among_o which_o its_o witness_v of_o adoption_n be_v none_o of_o the_o least_o according_a to_o that_o measure_n of_o light_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v lend_v i_o i_o have_v endeavour_v the_o clear_n up_o of_o that_o great_a mystery_n in_o the_o ensue_a treatise_n and_o some_o of_o the_o reason_n which_o have_v bias_v my_o spirit_n to_o appear_v in_o it_o in_o so_o public_a a_o way_n be_v these_o which_o follow_v 1._o because_o of_o the_o many_o encouragement_n which_o i_o have_v have_v hereunto_o from_o diverse_a friend_n both_o minister_n and_o other_o 2._o because_o so_o few_o have_v write_v distinct_o on_o this_o subject_a the_o more_o immediate_a testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v very_o little_o insist_v upon_o by_o any_o that_o i_o can_v ever_o yet_o see_v assurance_n i_o confess_v be_v the_o subject_a of_o diverse_a book_n but_o there_o be_v many_o mark_n and_o sign_n lay_v down_o by_o some_o which_o i_o fear_v will_v not_o hold_v weight_n in_o the_o balance_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n 3._o because_o of_o the_o many_o delusion_n which_o multitude_n of_o soul_n be_v under_o in_o these_o day_n who_o yet_o be_v pretender_n to_o the_o spirit_n therein_o here_o be_v many_o thing_n that_o if_o the_o lord_n will_v may_v be_v conducible_a to_o the_o undeceive_n of_o such_o as_o be_v take_v in_o the_o snare_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o to_o the_o establish_n other_o against_o they_o 4._o because_o of_o those_o great_a perplexity_n and_o inward_a distress_n which_o myself_o and_o many_o heaven-borne_a soul_n have_v be_v in_o for_o want_v of_o light_n into_o that_o question_n how_o shall_v i_o know_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n from_o the_o delusion_n of_o satan_n i_o have_v be_v like_o noah●_n dove_n have_v not_o know_v where_o to_o set_v the_o foot_n of_o my_o soul_n as_o to_o the_o doctrinal_a part_n so_o as_o to_o be_v safe_a for_o eternity_n i_o know_v that_o faith_n and_o other_o grace_n when_o of_o the_o right_a stamp_n be_v evid_v nce_v but_o how_o to_o know_v true_a faith_n from_o false_a and_o so_o for_o other_o grace_n and_o that_o my_o heart_n do_v not_o deceive_v i_o in_o pass_a judgement_n on_o my_o condition_n see_v satan_n transform_v himself_o into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n and_o counterfeit_v every_o grace_n this_o have_v put_v i_o to_o a_o stand_n and_o now_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v i_o much_o satisfaction_n in_o this_o search_n more_o than_o ever_o i_o have_v former_o about_o the_o doctrinal_a part_n and_o deliver_v i_o from_o many_o perplexity_n and_o fear_n which_o heretofore_o i_o labour_v under_o lest_o i_o shall_v take_v that_o for_o a_o evidence_n which_o be_v none_o i_o be_o hereby_o encourage_v to_o hope_n that_o these_o direction_n may_v be_v useful_a unto_o other_o in_o the_o same_o way_n that_o they_o have_v be_v to_o i_o yet_o the_o special_a concurrence_n of_o the_o spirit_n only_o can_v make_v they_o effectual_a to_o a_o soul_n for_o their_o proper_a end_n and_o those_o experience_n of_o that_o more_o immediate_a testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o thou_o find_v in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o book_n come_v to_o my_o hand_n by_o a_o especial_a providence_n when_o i_o have_v well_o nigh_o finish_v the_o treatise_n and_o carry_v with_o they_o such_o a_o harmony_n unto_o what_o the_o lord_n have_v convince_v i_o of_o before_o from_o his_o word_n yet_o be_v almost_o discourage_v for_o publish_v because_o i_o have_v find_v so_o little_a thereof_o in_o my_o own_o experience_n these_o have_v not_o only_o add_v much_o confirmation_n to_o i_o in_o the_o truth_n itself_o but_o also_o have_v give_v i_o much_o encouragement_n to_o a_o proceed_n in_o the_o work_n the_o treatise_n by_o a_o blessing_n from_o heaven_n may_v be_v useful_a 1._o to_o those_o which_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o nature_n to_o take_v they_o off_o those_o sandy_a foundation_n which_o they_o have_v build_v upon_o for_o eternity_n here_o they_o may_v see_v how_o far_o they_o may_v go_v and_o yet_o be_v in_o a_o perish_a condition_n still_o though_o they_o may_v attain_v unto_o conviction_n of_o sin_n and_o to_o a_o kind_n of_o believe_v on_o christ_n and_o have_v some_o good_a motion_n and_o desire_n etc._n etc._n yet_o unless_o there_o be_v such_o a_o through-worke_n as_o bring_v in_o a_o heart_n turn_v from_o sin_n and_o to_o christ_n they_o will_v miscarry_v everlasting_o for_o all_o this_o the_o sway_v prevail_a part_n of_o the_o heart_n must_v be_v christ-ward_n else_o their_o faith_n be_v vain_a they_o be_v yet_o in_o their_o sin_n and_o hence_o we_o read_v so_o often_o of_o conversion_n and_o turn_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o that_o as_o a_o distinguish_a thing_n of_o saint_n from_o other_o jam._n 5.20_o math._n 18.3_o 4._o act._n 3.19_o psal_n 51.13_o ezek._n 18.30.32_o act._n 14.15_o act._n 26.18.20_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o that_o the_o heart_n be_v touch_v or_o wrought_v upon_o by_o the_o word_n unless_o it_o be_v turn_v 2._o to_o those_o which_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n it_o may_v be_v of_o advantage_n to_o they_o towards_o peace_n joy_n comfort_n establishment_n and_o let_v they_o beware_v of_o disow_v any_o testimony_n from_o the_o spirit_n whither_o in_o that_o immediate_a way_n or_o otherwise_o it_o be_v a_o ordinary_a say_n that_o wicked_a man_n will_v have_v christ_n for_o their_o saviour_n but_o not_o for_o their_o lord_n and_o i_o grant_v that_o none_o do_v right_o take_v christ_n for_o salvation_n but_o also_o do_v take_v he_o for_o sanctification_n but_o if_o hereby_o they_o intend_v to_o make_v receive_v of_o christ_n as_o lord_n the_o only_a evidence_n of_o interest_n in_o he_o i_o conceive_v they_o be_v much_o mistake_v for_o blood_n be_v make_v a_o witness_n of_o adoption_n as_o well_o as_o water_n and_o i_o be_o confident_a there_o be_v no_o hearty_a willingness_n in_o any_o unrenewed_a soul_n to_o have_v christ_n for_o a_o saviour_n joh._n 5.40_o hebr._n 2.3_o receive_v christ_n as_o a_o saviour_n be_v as_o distinguish_v as_o receive_v he_o as_o a_o lord_n but_o there_o may_v be_v some_o kind_n of_o willingness_n to_o receive_v he_o either_o way_n yet_o if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o effectual_a hearty_a willingness_n it_o be_v not_o evidence_v of_o which_o see_v more_o in_o the_o treatise_n itself_o and_o now_o reader_n search_v the_o scripture_n whither_o the_o thing_n be_v so_o or_o not_o and_o if_o this_o poor_a treatise_n may_v but_o be_v a_o provocation_n unto_o other_o
for_o the_o assure_v we_o of_o our_o adoption_n i_o find_v no_o rule_n for_o these_o the_o spirit_n give_v a_o certainty_n of_o adoption_n by_o its_o act_n within_o the_o soul_n as_o well_o as_o if_o a_o hundred_o witness_n have_v affirm_v it_o as_o 1._o it_o make_v a_o effectual_a application_n of_o witness_v word_n when_o it_o testify_v by_o direct_a act_n the_o hint_n or_o give_v in_o of_o a_o word_n be_v not_o enough_o as_o i_o shall_v show_v in_o another_o place_n but_o then_o a_o word_n be_v apply_v when_o it_o be_v powerful_o set_v upon_o the_o heart_n by_o the_o spirit_n and_o be_v so_o fix_v settle_a and_o engrave_v there_o that_o it_o become_v a_o engraft_a word_n james_n 1.21_o and_o work_v effectual_o towards_o its_o proper_a end_n 1_o thess_n 2.13_o coloss_n 1.29_o and_o that_o it_o bear_v down_o all_o temptation_n objection_n and_o unbelieved_a reason_n that_o be_v in_o the_o soul_n before_o against_o what_o it_o be_v call_v up_o to_o by_o the_o word_n and_o so_o be_v write_v upon_o the_o heart_n jerem._n 31._o v._o 33._o it_o be_v only_o the_o finger_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o can_v do_v this_o 2_o corin._n 3.3_o and_o when_o there_o be_v such_o a_o application_n of_o a_o witness_v word_n as_o the_o heart_n be_v irresistible_o overpower_v into_o a_o pers_n wasion_n of_o adoption_n by_o it_o than_o it_o it_o indeed_o witness_v and_o some_o of_o the_o saint_n have_v find_v such_o a_o supernatural_a power_n come_v alongst_o with_o a_o word_n that_o the_o ugh_o affliction_n and_o temptation_n come_v yet_o they_o dare_v not_o can_v not_o but_o say_v to_o the_o lord_n doubtless_o thou_o be_v our_o father_n or_o as_o 2_o corin._n 5.1_o we_o know_v and_o at_o such_o a_o time_n the_o promise_n be_v as_o it_o be_v hold_v to_o the_o heart_n they_o be_v knit_v and_o glue_v together_o that_o until_o the_o spirit_n suspend_v its_o operation_n it_o be_v as_o easy_a to_o make_v the_o soul_n leave_v the_o body_n as_o to_o make_v this_o persuasion_n of_o adoption_n leave_v the_o soul_n as_o i_o shall_v show_v more_o full_o else_o where_o 2._o the_o spirit_n excit_v and_o draw_v out_o some_o manifest_a special_a gracious_a act_n when_o the_o way_n of_o testify_v be_v by_o reflex_n act_n the_o gospel_n declare_v and_o determine_v say_v and_o other_o grace_n to_o be_v infallible_a evidence_n of_o adoption_n now_o the_o spirit_n enable_v to_o act_v these_o rom._n 5.5_o gal._n 5.22_o and_o from_o these_o by_o reflex_n act_n to_o draw_v concsusion_n of_o adoption_n i_o call_v they_o special_a gracious_a act_n to_o difference_n they_o from_o those_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n unbeliever_n may_v have_v hebr._n 6._o v._o 4_o 5.6_o that_o have_v not_o power_n to_o assert_v adoption_n which_o be_v a_o special_a relation_n for_o nothing_o common_a can_v evidence_n that_o which_o be_v special_a and_o they_o must_v be_v manifest_a act_n of_o grace_n for_o witness_n be_v purposely_o to_o clear_v up_o a_o matter_n which_o be_v dark_a &_o dubious_a and_o therefore_o witness_v must_v ever_o be_v by_o what_o be_v more_o conspicuous_a and_o apparent_a and_o hence_o christ_n refer_v the_o jew_n to_o his_o work_n and_o the_o scripture_n joh._n 5.36.39_o because_o they_o be_v more_o visible_a to_o they_o and_o i_o conceive_v there_o be_v many_o secret_a concurrence_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o though_o they_o be_v special_a work_n yet_o be_v not_o intend_v for_o this_o but_o some_o other_o end_n and_o with_o the_o utmost_a diligence_n a_o soul_n can_v use_v be_v not_o capable_a of_o be_v improve_v unto_o witness_v be_v themselves_o so_o hardly_o discerneable_a yet_o i_o dare_v not_o confine_v assurance_n unto_o eminent_a saint_n i_o think_v few_o or_o no_o christian_n be_v so_o weak_a that_o they_o be_v destitute_a of_o all_o such_o act_n of_o grace_n as_o may_v witness_v to_o they_o adoption_n as_o i_o shall_v prove_v afterward_o but_o there_o be_v a_o vast_a difference_n between_o the_o operation_n and_o the_o witness_v operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n these_o must_v have_v light_a as_o well_o as_o peculiarnesse_v in_o they_o 3._o the_o spirit_n cause_v the_o soul_n to_o apply_v itself_o unto_o the_o use_n of_o due_a mean_n for_o the_o attain_n assurance_n sometime_o his_o proceed_n be_v gradual_a or_o by_o degree_n the_o soul_n go_v on_o step_n by_o step_n towards_o it_o and_o it_o may_v be_v a_o great_a while_n before_o it_o arrive_v at_o it_o as_o the_o spirit_n may_v first_o convince_v by_o the_o word_n that_o a_o christian_n ought_v to_o seek_v after_o and_o may_v attain_v unto_o more_o quietness_n &_o establishment_n then_o yet_o itself_o have_v find_v 2_o pet._n 1._o ver_fw-la 10._o this_o part_n of_o the_o will_n of_o christ_n it_o little_o mind_v before_o and_o then_o it_o may_v be_v the_o lord_n remove_v out_o of_o the_o way_n those_o impediment_n which_o former_o hinder_v assurance_n subdue_v some_o corruption_n answer_v some_o doubt_n cause_v it_o to_o see_v the_o groundlessness_n of_o some_o fear_n it_o have_v labour_v under_o help_v it_o to_o look_v into_o satan_n design_n that_o have_v hinder_v the_o work_n of_o christ_n within_o it_o and_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o some_o glorious_a advantage_n in_o the_o attain_n of_o assurance_n which_o it_o think_v not_o of_o before_o it_o see_v how_o it_o may_v glorify_v god_n more_o in_o such_o a_o condition_n than_o it_o can_v do_v under_o doubt_n fear_n disquieting_n and_o thus_o the_o spirit_n capacitate_v the_o soul_n for_o such_o a_o mercy_n so_o exod._n 33._o v._o 9.11.14.17_o moses_n upon_o every_o new_a grant_n or_o return_v of_o prayer_n take_v advantage_n to_o rise_v high_a and_o high_o in_o his_o request_n and_o at_o last_o cry_v out_o ver_fw-la 18._o i_o beseech_v thou_o show_v i_o thy_o glory_n and_o ver_fw-la 19_o compare_v with_o exod._n 34.6_o all_o his_o goodness_n pass_v before_o he_o so_o the_o lord_n cause_v a_o soul_n to_o seek_v for_o some_o mercit_n and_o upon_o the_o lord_n answer_v some_o desire_n it_o have_v encouragement_n to_o go_v with_o a_o holy_a boldness_n for_o great_a mercy_n and_o at_o last_o it_o be_v enable_v to_o act_v faith_n in_o a_o eminent_a way_n for_o sight_n of_o divine_a glory_n and_o in_o the_o face_n of_o christ_n have_v these_o also_o it_o obtain_v some_o mercy_n conduce_v to_o assurance_n at_o first_o and_o afterward_o enjoy_v that_o also_o i_o have_v mention_v this_o the_o rather_o 1._o because_o christian_n think_v to_o have_v assurance_n all_o at_o once_o upon_o a_o sudden_a and_o be_v apt_a to_o be_v very_o much_o trouble_v if_o it_o come_v not_o in_o by_o the_o lump_n whereas_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v to_o let_v it_o in_o sometime_o by_o little_a and_o little_a and_o the_o soul_n may_v be_v a_o long_a time_n in_o attain_v it_o this_o be_v no_o matter_n of_o discouragement_n that_o thou_o have_v it_o not_o present_o if_o thou_o be_v in_o the_o way_n to_o it_o 2._o because_o many_o be_v very_o suspicious_a of_o a_o testimony_n if_o it_o be_v not_o by_o some_o violent_a powerful_a heart-astonishing_a alteration_n whereas_o though_o sometime_o it_o be_v by_o such_o invincible_a operation_n as_o do_v not_o leave_v the_o soul_n to_o freedom_n whether_o it_o will_v own_v they_o or_o not_o but_o overcome_v the_o heart_n immediate_o to_o a_o reception_n of_o the_o testimony_n yet_o at_o other_o time_n the_o spirit_n act_v in_o a_o more_o mild_a gentle_a and_o secret_a indiscernible_a way_n and_o do_v more_o leave_v the_o soul_n to_o its_o choice_n for_o own_v it_o or_o not_o and_o by_o quench_v the_o motion_n of_o the_o spirit_n it_o may_v miss_v of_o that_o assurance_n which_o they_o lead_v to_o yet_o these_o operation_n when_o they_o doc_fw-fr effectual_o witness_v be_v so_o powerful_a that_o ever_o they_o carry_v the_o heart_n alongst_o with_o they_o towards_o christ_n when_o assurance_n come_v in_o as_o the_o result_n of_o selfe-examination_n it_o may_v not_o cause_v such_o eminent_a alteration_n as_o a_o soul_n may_v expect_v and_o yet_o it_o may_v be_v good_a but_o there_o be_v sweet_a gracious_a effect_n that_o will_v follow_v real_a witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o way_n soever_o they_o come_v in_o and_o that_o bow_v of_o the_o heart_n to_o the_o use_n of_o mean_n as_o selfe-examination_n etc._n etc._n be_v another_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o a_o witness_n 4._o the_o spirit_n afford_v irradiation_n as_o a_o witness_n open_v a_o case_n and_o show_v how_o it_o stand_v so_o the_o spirit_n by_o shine_v forth_o with_o its_o bright_a glorious_a and_o heavenly_a beam_n into_o the_o dark_a dungeon-like_a soul_n do_v cause_v it_o to_o discern_v enough_o in_o the_o application_n of_o promise_n and_o in_o the_o exercise_n of_o grace_n to_o satisfy_v it_o about_o its_o adoption_n and_o though_o it_o
be_v the_o lord_n way_n of_o speak_v to_o the_o soul_n of_o his_o people_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v call_v often_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o it_o be_v the_o word_n that_o david_n hope_v in_o for_o his_o salvation_n psal_n 119.81_o 82._o he_o have_v the_o letter_n of_o a_o promise_n before_o v._o 28._o but_o this_o will_v not_o satisfy_v he_o unless_o the_o lord_n will_v speak_v it_o over_o again_o he_o must_v have_v it_o apply_v to_o his_o inner_a man_n say_z ●o_o my_o soul_n they_o be_v internal_a speaking_n he_o pray_v for_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v lord_n outward_a salvation_n will_v be_v nothing_o to_o i_o without_o inward_a feeling_n of_o thy_o favour_n in_o they_o o_o say_v to_o my_o soul_n i._n e._n raise_v thou_o a_o inward_a persuasion_n in_o my_o heart_n of_o my_o interest_n in_o thou_o say_v i_o be_o thy_o salvation_n i._n e._n not_o only_o that_o he_o which_o believe_v shall_v be_v save_v but_o let_v i_o be_v particularise_v thy_n salvation_n and_o not_o only_o that_o thou_o wise_a deliver_v i_o out_o of_o my_o distress_n but_o say_v i_o not_o only_o will_v be_v but_o be_o thy_o salvation_n he_o beg_v here_o the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o word_n by_o a_o effectual_a application_n of_o it_o to_o his_o soul_n 3._o from_o a_o believer_n right_a and_o title_n to_o such_o word_n or_o promise_n christ_n be_v he_o and_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n his_o in_o christ_n 2_o cor._n 1.20_o yea_o promise_v direct_v to_o particular_a person_n in_o scripture_n when_o they_o be_v about_o thing_n of_o general_a concernment_n do_v admit_v of_o a_o general_a application_n and_o every_o believer_n may_v lay_v claim_n to_o they_o as_o his_o that_o promise_n i_o will_v not_o fail_v thou_o or_o for_o sake_n thou_o be_v direct_v to_o joshua_n josh_n 1._o v._n 5._o yet_o be_v apply_v general_o heb._n 13.5_o and_o so_o general_a promise_n be_v capable_a of_o a_o particular_a application_n unto_o every_o individual_a believer_n now_o if_o the_o spirit_n do_v not_o apply_v they_o christian_n shall_v miss_v of_o that_o prosit_fw-la and_o advantage_n which_o according_a to_o the_o intent_n of_o the_o promiser_n be_v to_o be_v reap_v by_o they_o a_o believer_n be_v adopt_v 36.25_o isa_n 41.10_o ezek_n 36.25_o have_v god_n for_o his_o god_n have_v clean_o water_v sprinkle_v on_o he_o etc._n etc._n and_o the_o word_n do_v say_v thus_o much_o to_o he_o though_o in_o a_o more_o secret_a way_n in_o a_o language_n which_o he_o understand_v not_o the_o witness_v of_o the_o spirit_n be_v but_o the_o utter_v these_o thing_n to_o the_o soul_n with_o a_o more_o audible_a voice_n it_o be_v but_o like_o a_o father_n tell_v his_o child_n of_o a_o estate_n which_o be_v real_o his_o own_o before_o so_o christian_n have_v a_o propriety_n in_o such_o word_n or_o promise_v before_o and_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o give_v a_o knowledge_n unto_o believer_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v free_o give_v they_o of_o god_n 1_o corin._n 2.12_o and_o so_o it_o will_v apply_v these_o as_o well_o as_o other_o word_n for_o the_o gospel_n ow_v no_o restriction_n or_o limitation_n as_o if_o some_o promise_n be_v to_o be_v apply_v other_o not_z the_o whole_a gospel_n be_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o so_o any_o word_n may_v be_v apply_v for_o its_o proper_a end_n and_o therefore_o witness_v word_n as_o well_o as_o other_o 4._o from_o the_o appointment_n of_o divine_a promise_n for_o this_o very_a end_n to_o witness_v which_o must_v be_v by_o application_n from_o the_o spirit_n the_o whole_a word_n be_v often_o call_v god_n testimony_n psal_n 19.7_o &_o 119._o v._o 2.22.24_o etc._n etc._n &_o heb._n 6.18_o there_o be_v two_o immutable_a thing_n ordain_v on_o purpose_n to_o help_v we_o unto_o strong_a consolation_n and_o they_o be_v 1._o god_n promise_n 2._o his_o oath_n v._o 13.17_o but_o how_o do_v they_o bring_v in_o this_o consolation_n it_o be_v by_o witness_v for_o ver_fw-la 16._o a_o oath_n be_v say_v to_o be_v for_o confirmation_n and_o so_o the_o two_o immutable_a thing_n bring_v in_o this_o strong_a consolation_n as_o they_o serve_v for_o the_o ratification_n and_o confirmation_n to_o a_o soul_n of_o its_o interest_n in_o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o use_n to_o all_o the_o heir_n of_o promise_n that_o they_o be_v of_o to_o abraham_n ver_fw-la 17_o 18._o to_o give_v they_o the_o same_o certainty_n of_o what_o they_o be_v heir_n to_o that_o he_o have_v and_o both_o the_o promise_n and_o the_o oath_n must_v needs_o give_v testimony_n by_o direct_a rather_o than_o reflex_n act_n as_o the_o nature_n of_o they_o do_v intimate_v by_o all_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o god_n promise_n and_o oath_n both_o which_o be_v without_o we_o do_v as_o proper_o conduce_v to_o the_o afford_v assurance_n of_o our_o propriety_n in_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o everlasting_a inheritance_n by_o he_o as_o any_o inherent_a grace_n or_o qualification_n can_v do_v now_o as_o it_o be_v the_o application_n to_o abraham_n of_o these_o two_o that_o make_v they_o witness_v to_o he_o gen_n 22._o v._n 12.16_o 17._o so_o there_o must_v be_v a_o superadded_a work_n of_o the_o divine_a spirit_n make_v a_o application_n of_o they_o to_o particular_a soul_n as_o there_o be_v to_o abraham_n else_o they_o can_v add_v a_o confirmation_n or_o bring_v in_o consolation_n to_o any_o heir_n of_o promise_n which_o be_v the_o end_v they_o be_v intend_v for_o argu._n 3_o from_o the_o number_n of_o witness_n which_o the_o gospel_n ow_v 1_o joh._n 5.8_o there_o be_v three_o that_o bear_v witness_n on_o earth_n now_o if_o the_o spirit_n shall_v not_o give_v a_o distinct_a testimony_n from_o water_n and_o blood_n there_o be_v not_o three_o witness_n indeed_o neither_o water_n nor_o blood_n be_v sufficient_a alone_o to_o witness_v but_o the_o spirit_n with_o water_n make_v but_o one_o witness_n and_o hence_o the_o water_n have_v the_o denomination_n for_o the_o witness_n and_o not_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o spirit_n with_o blood_n make_v but_o one_o witness_n and_o thence_o the_o blood_n be_v call_v the_o witness_n and_o not_o the_o spirit_n and_o therefore_o if_o the_o spirit_n have_v not_o a_o distinct_a way_n of_o witness_v from_o its_o concurrence_n with_o these_o there_o be_v but_o two_o not_o three_o witness_n and_o that_o water_n shall_v be_v so_o distinct_a from_o blood_n in_o the_o way_n of_o its_o testify_a and_o that_o the_o spirit_n shall_v not_o be_v as_o distinct_a from_o they_o both_o be_v unconceivable_a and_o sound_v very_o harsh_a i_o conclude_v therefore_o that_o the_o same_o use_n which_o water_n or_o blood_n be_v of_o seal_v the_o spirit_n witness_v with_o blood_n and_o with_o water_n but_o beside_o the_o spirit_n have_v a_o distinct_a witness_v by_o way_n of_o enlarge_a the_o soul_n with_o joy_n in_o the_o soul_n apprehension_n of_o god_n fatherly_a love_n the_o spirit_n do_v not_o always_o witness_v unto_o we_o our_o condition_n by_o force_n of_o argument_n from_o sanctification_n but_o sometime_o immediate_o by_o way_n of_o presence_n as_o the_o sight_n of_o a_o friend_n comfort_v without_o help_n of_o discourse_n dr._n sibbs_n saint_n seal_v when_o they_o witness_v the_o same_o the_o spirit_n be_v of_o when_o that_o witness_v and_o as_o they_o have_v something_o distinct_a from_o each_o other_o from_o whence_o when_o discern_v a_o conclusion_n be_v draw_v of_o interest_n in_o christ_n so_o the_o spirit_n have_v some_o peculiar_a act_n or_o operation_n of_o its_o own_o distinct_a from_o both_o which_o effectual_o beget_v the_o same_o persuasion_n which_o they_o do_v though_o in_o a_o more_o immediate_a way_n then_o if_o it_o be_v by_o inference_n from_o such_o promise_n as_o they_o attain_v it_o by_o object_n but_o by_o spirit_n be_v not_o mean_v here_o the_o holy-ghost_n but_o our_o spirit_n they_o be_v the_o three_o witness_n answ_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o divine_a spirit_n 1._o because_o the_o divine_a spirit_n be_v a_o witness_n on_o earth_n rom._n 8.16_o and_o so_o the_o enumeration_n of_o witness_n on_o earth_n be_v not_o full_a if_o that_o be_v not_o intend_v 2._o because_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o this_o chapter_n be_v not_o to_o advance_v our_o spirit_n but_z the_o divine_a spirit_n as_o the_o witness_n on_o earth_n 1_o joh._n 5.6_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n that_o bear_v witness_v because_o the_o spirit_n be_v truth_n and_o hereupon_o he_o number_v the_o witness_n ver_fw-la 7_o 8._o &_o ver_fw-la 10_o he_o that_o believe_v have_v the_o witness_n in_v himself_o which_o argue_v that_o his_o design_n be_v to_o assert_v the_o holy-spirit_n to_o be_v a_o witness_n on_o earth_n for_o he_o do_v
only_o to_o have_v a_o probable_a opinion_n but_o a_o certain_a knowledge_n that_o the_o spirit_n dwell_v in_o they_o which_o be_v to_o know_v their_o adoption_n rom._n 8._o v._n 9_o and_o 1_o joh._n 3.24_o hereby_o we_o know_v he_o abide_v in_o we_o by_o the_o spirit_n and_o those_o he_o write_v to_o be_v little_a child_n v._o 18._o &_o 1_o joh._n 2.12_o he_o tell_v they_o that_o their_o sin_n be_v forgive_v they_o which_o may_v assure_v we_o that_o it_o do_v not_o make_v to_o the_o hurt_n of_o weak_a believer_n to_o know_v they_o be_v forgive_v arg._n 4._o weak_a christian_n ought_v to_o exercise_v themselves_o unto_o selfe-examination_n ergo_fw-la they_o be_v in_o a_o capacity_n to_o attain_v a_o knowledge_n of_o their_o state_n thereby_o 2_o cor._n 13.5_o examine_v yourselves_o prove_v yourselves_o the_o ingemination_n of_o the_o exhortation_n argue_v it_o to_o be_v a_o duty_n of_o high_a concernment_n else_o he_o will_v not_o use_v so_o much_o earnestness_n in_o exciting_a to_o it_o and_o it_o be_v their_o station_n they_o be_v to_o inquire_v about_o 1._o whither_o they_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n 2._o whither_o christ_n be_v in_o they_o or_o not_o and_o that_o weak_a believer_n be_v not_o exempt_v from_o this_o duty_n be_v undeniable_a for_o 1._o it_o extend_v or_o reach_v to_o unbeliever_n those_o that_o have_v not_o christ_n in_o they_o be_v to_o find_v it_o out_o hereby_o they_o be_v to_o try_v whither_o they_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n or_o no_o 2._o it_o have_v no_o limitation_n unto_o strong_a believer_n let_v they_o prove_v it_o that_o will_v assert_v it_o 3._o these_o be_v weak_a in_o the_o faith_n which_o be_v here_o twice_o over_o require_v to_o come_v up_o to_o it_o 2_o corin._n 12._o v._n 20_o 21._o prone_a to_o envy_n strife_n backbiting_n whisper_n swell_n &c._n &c._n which_o be_v make_v the_o symptom_n of_o but_o babe_n in_o christ_n 1_o cor._n 3._o v._n 1_o 2_o 3._o yet_o these_o be_v enjoin_v to_o examine_v 2_o cor._n 13.5_o there_o be_v some_o season_n then_o which_o all_o christian_n even_o the_o weak_a aught_o to_o take_v for_o self-examination_n about_o their_o union_n with_o christ_n ergo_fw-la they_o be_v capable_a of_o do_v it_o with_o good_a success_n either_o weak_a christian_n must_v always_o give_v in_o this_o verdict_n that_o they_o be_v without_o christ_n and_o this_o be_v false_a and_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o command_v they_o to_o a_o false_a conclusion_n or_o else_o they_o must_v give_v in_o no_o verdict_n and_o then_o the_o duty_n be_v fruitless_a as_o to_o its_o proper_a end_n or_o else_o they_o must_v conclude_v that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n and_o the_o text_n call_v for_o one_o of_o these_o conclusion_n either_o 1._o that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n or_o 2._o reprobate_n i.e._n unsound_a hypocrite_n without_o the_o spirit_n unto_o all_o which_o i_o may_v add_v that_o these_o roman_n be_v many_o of_o they_o weak_a in_o the_o faith_n rom._n 14._o v._n 1_o 2._o etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o in_o the_o text_n he_o except_v and_o exclude_v none_o but_o seem_v to_o conclude_v all_o under_o the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n by_o all_o which_o i_o can_v but_o apprehend_v assurance_n to_o be_v ordinary_o attaineable_a even_o by_o weak_a believer_n chap._n xi_o show_v how_o a_o soul_n may_v know_v whether_o it_o enjoy_v the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o not_o and_o first_o the_o immediate_a witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n qu_n 4._o how_o may_v a_o soul_n know_v whither_o it_o enjoy_v the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o not_o before_o i_o give_v a_o direct_a answer_n to_o this_o question_n i_o shall_v premise_v that_o the_o answer_n to_o it_o will_v be_v useful_a to_o such_o end_n as_o these_o 1._o to_o give_v satisfaction_n unto_o doubt_v soul_n many_o precious_a son_n of_o zion_n be_v full_a of_o fear_n about_o their_o adoption_n can_v they_o but_o know_v that_o god_n be_v their_o father_n they_o shall_v account_v it_o a_o favour_n of_o great_a value_n whereas_o the_o spirit_n have_v witness_v this_o to_o they_o but_o they_o know_v not_o its_o voice_n or_o understand_v not_o that_o these_o operation_n which_o they_o have_v find_v do_v amount_v to_o a_o testimony_n of_o divine_a love_n they_o question_v whither_o they_o be_v from_o the_o spirit_n or_o not_o or_o else_o whither_o they_o be_v witness_v and_o intend_v by_o the_o lord_n for_o that_o end_n by_o a_o due_a observation_n of_o what_o i_o shall_v here_o lay_v down_o and_o the_o shining_n of_o the_o spirit_n on_o its_o own_o work_n without_o which_o nothing_o will_v be_v witness_v those_o that_o never_o have_v assurance_n way_n attain_v it_o and_o those_o that_o have_v lose_v it_o may_v recover_v it_o again_o if_o by_o reflection_n they_o can_v find_v that_o such_o work_n have_v pass_v upon_o their_o heart_n as_o i_o shall_v speak_v of_o 2._o to_o difference_n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n from_o delusion_n of_o satan_n and_o the_o single_a testimony_n of_o our_o own_o spirit_n that_o so_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o spirit_n may_v be_v own_v and_o satanical_a delusion_n reject_v 3._o to_o confirm_v and_o establish_v those_o that_o do_v enjoy_v witnessing_n in_o the_o persuasion_n of_o their_o adoption_n and_o the_o better_a to_o attain_v these_o end_n i_o shall_v 1_o speak_v particular_o unto_o the_o feverall_a way_n of_o witness_v how_o a_o soul_n may_v know_v that_o 1._o the_o spirit_n 2._o water_n 3._o blood_n have_v witness_v 2._o add_v some_o general_n discovery_n or_o secondary_a evidence_n which_o will_v respect_v all_o those_o way_n of_o witness_v according_a unto_o the_o threefold_a way_n of_o the_o spirit_n witness_v so_o must_v i_o divide_v the_o question_n into_o three_o qu_n 1._o how_o may_v a_o soul_n know_v whither_o the_o spirit_n have_v witness_v its_o adoption_n to_o it_o in_o that_o more_o immediate_a way_n or_o not_o before_o i_o reply_v to_o this_o question_n i_o shall_v give_v these_o preconsideration_n preconsid_n 1._o that_o there_o must_v be_v some_o great_a and_o remarkable_a impression_n and_o alteration_n make_v upon_o the_o heart_n work_v it_o into_o some_o strong_a persuasion_n of_o adoption_n else_o there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o ground_n for_o a_o pretend_v to_o a_o immediate_a testimony_n those_o that_o never_o find_v any_o thing_n of_o this_o nature_n be_v not_o concern_v in_o this_o question_n for_o there_o must_v be_v something_o like_o the_o testimony_n to_o make_v capable_a of_o trial_n the_o nature_n of_o a_o immediate_a presence_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o application_n of_o a_o word_n require_v that_o there_o be_v some_o great_a impression_n when_o ever_o they_o be_v enjoy_v jam._n 1.21_o 1_o thes_n 2.13_o 2_o corin_z 3.3_o so_o that_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v read_v over_o witness_v word_n never_o so_o often_o and_o his_o thought_n shall_v run_v this_o way_n that_o god_n be_v his_o god_n and_o christ_n and_o eternal_a life_n his_o yet_o if_o no_o power_n come_v alongst_o with_o the_o word_n to_o fix_v fasten_v and_o set_v it_o upon_o the_o heart_n there_o be_v not_o any_o colour_n for_o a_o immediate_a testimony_n the_o word_n must_v take_v deep_a root_n in_o the_o heart_n matth._n 13._o v._n 21.23_o else_o no_o gracious_a effect_n at_o all_o be_v accomplish_v by_o it_o much_o less_o can_v it_o be_v witness_v but_o if_o a_o man_n have_v find_v some_o great_a alteration_n make_v upon_o his_o spirit_n that_o have_v wrought_v towards_o a_o persuasion_n of_o adoption_n our_o enquiry_n be_v how_o he_o may_v know_v whither_o it_o be_v mere_o a_o strong_a flashy_a opinion_n and_o fancy_n of_o his_o own_o spirit_n a_o delusion_n of_o satan_n or_o indeed_o a_o testimony_n from_o the_o divine_a spirit_n precons_n 2._o that_o my_o design_n in_o answer_v this_o question_n be_v not_o to_o discover_v who_o be_v interest_v in_o christ_n and_o who_o not_o that_o will_v be_v the_o thing_n drive_v at_o when_o i_o come_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o spirit_n witness_v by_o water_n &_o blood_n but_o if_o a_o man_n have_v a_o testimony_n of_o interest_n in_o christ_n by_o some_o eminent_a impression_n make_v upon_o his_o spirit_n our_o enquiry_n be_v whither_o it_o be_v from_o the_o divine_a spirit_n or_o be_v a_o delusion_n i_o suppose_v that_o many_o real_a believer_n may_v through_o their_o own_o default_n want_v this_o immediate_a testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o may_v be_v under_o false_a confidence_n through_o the_o delusion_n of_o satan_n i._n e._n confidence_n take_v up_o from_o such_o ground_n as_o be_v not_o evidence_v revel_v 3.17_o psal_n 30.6_o when_o by_o a_o due_a search_n they_o may_v find_v infallible_a ground_n for_o the_o same_o conclusion_n this_o question_n be_v not_o for_o the_o trial_n of_o christianity_n but_o of_o some_o confidence_n thereof_o
know_v this_o be_v a_o main_a use_n which_o the_o spirit_n be_v intend_v for_o 1_o corin._n 2._o v._n 10_o 11_o 12._o but_o god_n have_v reveal_v they_o to_o we_o by_o his_o spirit_n i_o e._n those_o thing_n v._o 9_o that_o eye_n have_v not_o see_v and_o v._o 12._o we_o have_v receive_v the_o spirit_n for_o what_o end_n that_o we_o may_v know_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v free_o give_v we_o of_o god_n whereas_o if_o the_o spirit_n do_v not_o give_v demonstration_n of_o its_o own_o presence_n in_o its_o revelation_n the_o soul_n may_v question_v whither_o the_o thing_n discover_v be_v from_o god_n or_o not_o and_o so_o the_o revelation_n will_v be_v of_o little_a use_n or_o advantage_n and_o can_v not_o sway_v the_o will_n to_o a_o rejection_n of_o what_o it_o have_v former_o own_v contrary_a to_o what_o be_v at_o present_a reveal_v and_o what_o light_n can_v have_v more_o perspicuity_n and_o clearness_n in_o it_o for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o satanical_a illusion_n than_o the_o light_n which_o proceed_v from_o the_o spirit_n who_o office_n it_o be_v to_o discover_v or_o manifest_v what_o be_v unknown_a and_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o when_o the_o spirit_n come_v in_o a_o witness_v way_n its_o light_n be_v like_o a_o candle_n or_o rather_o a_o beam_n of_o the_o sun_n dart_v into_o the_o soul_n whereby_o it_o see_v into_o the_o cunning_a insinuation_n unjust_a accusation_n violent_a and_o horrid_a temptation_n and_o curse_a delusion_n of_o satan_n more_o than_o at_o other_o time_n and_o know_v they_o to_o have_v their_o riste_n from_o he_o the_o anoint_v of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v within_o the_o saint_n be_v say_v to_o teach_v they_o all_o thing_n 1_o joh._n 2.27_o and_o to_o help_v against_o those_o seducer_n v._o 26._o i.e._n by_o the_o word_n as_o a_o mean_n it_o manife_v what_o be_v consentaneous_a or_o agreeable_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o christ_n and_o establish_v therein_o against_o all_o those_o crafty_a sophistication_n whereby_o satan_n seduce_v many_o &_o the_o same_o spirit_n take_v off_o the_o veil_n which_o be_v upon_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n and_o give_v they_o open_a vision_n of_o divine_a glory_n 2_o corin._n 3._o v._n 16_o 17_o 18._o all_o which_o speak_v out_o thus_o much_o that_o revelation_n from_o the_o spirit_n by_o the_o word_n have_v a_o inbred_a property_n to_o evidence_n their_o own_o proceed_n from_o the_o spirit_n and_o to_o discriminate_a or_o difference_n themselves_o from_o those_o flash_n of_o satan_n whereby_o he_o strive_v to_o his_o utmost_a to_o lead_v soul_n into_o groundless_a conclusion_n about_o matter_n of_o the_o high_a moment_n else_o they_o will_v not_o be_v effectual_a to_o prevent_v seduction_n 2.26_o 1_o joh._n 2.26_o which_o be_v one_o special_a end_n they_o be_v ordain_v to_o that_o which_o convince_o discover_v a_o delusion_n of_o satan_n must_v evidence_n itself_o to_o come_v from_o god_n delusion_n may_v pretend_v to_o the_o word_n but_o the_o anoint_v within_o teach_v the_o saint_n what_o be_v indeed_o according_a to_o the_o word_n arg._n 4._o from_o the_o lord_n ordain_v the_o in-being_a or_o indwelling_a of_o the_o spirit_n to_o be_v a_o evidence_n of_o our_o adoption_n if_o itself_o be_v inevident_a it_o can_v not_o conduce_v unto_o that_o end_n for_o every_o reason_n from_o whence_o any_o conclusion_n be_v collect_v must_v be_v clear_a than_o the_o conclusion_n itself_o only_a light_n can_v manifest_v eph._n 5.13_o that_o which_o evidence_v another_o thing_n to_o i_o must_v needs_o itself_o be_v more_o discernible_a it_o be_v impossible_a for_o a_o man_n successul_o to_o try_v his_o state_n by_o the_o inhabitation_n of_o the_o spirit_n if_o that_o be_v not_o more_o manife_a than_o his_o state_n and_o indeed_o what_o can_v evidence_n its_o indwelling_n but_o itself_o now_o this_o be_v often_o make_v the_o rule_n for_o trial_n as_o rom._n 8._o v._n 9_o you_o be_v not_o in_o the_o flesh_n but_o in_o the_o spirit_n now_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v that_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o you_o and_o it_o be_v add_v he_o that_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n be_v none_o of_o his_o 2_o cor._n 13.5_o examine_v know_v you_o not_o that_o christ_n be_v in_o you_o except_o you_o be_v reprobate_a 1_o cor._n 3.16_o know_v you_o not_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o you_o 1_o cor._n 6.19_o by_o all_o which_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o the_o spirit_n do_v give_v test_n money_n to_o itself_o in_o some_o of_o its_o operation_n or_o evidence_n that_o neither_o satan_n nor_o any_o creature_n can_v be_v the_o author_n of_o they_o object_n but_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o discearnable_a in_o its_o essence_n but_o in_o its_o operation_n ans_fw-fr 1._o the_o application_n of_o promise_n be_v a_o special_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n wherein_o its_o presence_n be_v as_o discernible_a as_o in_o any_o other_o of_o its_o operation_n ans_fw-fr 2._o those_o which_o be_v the_o witness_v act_n of_o the_o spirit_n have_v the_o great_a aptitude_n to_o afford_v soule-satisfying_a manifestation_n of_o the_o spirit_n presence_n in_o themselves_o of_o all_o other_o for_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o they_o be_v to_o manifest_a adoption_n to_o the_o soul_n rom._n 8.16_o and_o see_v a_o knowledge_n of_o its_o presence_n in_o the_o act_n be_v a_o main_a requisite_a unto_o assurance_n by_o they_o hence_o they_o can_v fall_v short_a of_o discover_v that_o these_o operation_n have_v more_o than_o ordinary_a light_n life_n and_o strength_n in_o they_o they_o differ_v in_o their_o brightness_n from_o other_o concurrence_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o much_o as_o the_o clear_a sun-shiny_a day_n do_v from_o that_o which_o be_v most_o dark_a and_o cloudy_a and_o therefore_o if_o ever_o the_o spirit_n be_v see_v in_o any_o operation_n it_o be_v in_o these_o which_o be_v the_o bright_a beam_n of_o this_o sun_n the_o spirit_n by_o a_o secret_a touch_n irresistible_o strike_v the_o soul_n into_o such_o clear_a firm_a and_o strong_a apprehension_n and_o persuasion_n of_o its_o adoption_n that_o though_o it_o meet_v with_o much_o within_o and_o with_o ut_fw-la from_o satan_n it_o be_v own_o heart_n and_o christian_a friend_n to_o work_v it_o into_o a_o contrary_a persuasion_n yet_o it_o can_v but_o say_v as_o job_n 19.25_o i_o know_v or_o as_o rom._n 8.38_o i_o be_o persuade_v as_o the_o spirit_n give_v effectual_a conviction_n of_o sin_n that_o the_o soul_n can_v deny_v its_o guiltiness_n which_o former_o have_v assert_v its_o innocency_n and_o that_o without_o inquire_v whither_o the_o spirit_n have_v do_v this_o or_o not_o so_o it_o do_v work_v effectual_o into_o a_o persuasion_n of_o adoption_n that_o till_o afterward_o it_o do_v not_o can_v or_o need_v not_o reflect_v to_o inquire_v whither_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n or_o no._n and_o so_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o spirit_n may_v not_o be_v discerneable_a and_o yet_o the_o testimony_n may_v be_v sure_a to_o the_o soul_n by_o operation_n it_o may_v conclude_v the_o presence_n of_o the_o spirit_n yea_o the_o spirit_n do_v not_o only_o give_v such_o a_o persuasion_n but_o also_o it_o discover_v some_o invincible_a ground_n and_o give_v such_o undeniable_a demonstration_n both_o of_o its_o own_o presence_n and_o of_o the_o reality_n of_o what_o be_v speak_v that_o as_o one_o under_o powerful_a conviction_n thereof_o it_o can_v but_o fall_v down_o before_o it_o and_o say_v to_o the_o spirit_n as_o they_o do_v to_o christ_n joh._n 16._o ver_fw-la 29_o 30._o now_o thou_o speak_v plain_o and_o speak_v no_o proverb_n by_o this_o i_o believe_v that_o thou_o come_v forth_o from_o god_n as_o from_o some_o divine_a attribute_n that_o shine_v forth_o eminent_o in_o those_o witness_v act_n 1._o the_o spirit_n cause_v the_o soul_n to_o take_v notice_n of_o divine_a wisdom_n in_o the_o application_n of_o promise_n as_o in_o the_o season_n of_o their_o come_n in_o and_o sutablenes_n unto_o its_o present_a condition_n and_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o their_o work_n it_o find_v how_o satan_n be_v defeat_v in_o his_o enterprise_n thereby_o his_o method_n and_o snare_n discover_v and_o he_o confound_v and_o then_o the_o soul_n can_v but_o cry_v out_o as_o rom._n 11._o v._n 33._o o_o the_o depth_n of_o the_o riches_n of_o god_n wisdom_n 2._o the_o spirit_n give_v it_o to_o see_v divine_a power_n improve_v for_o it_o in_o a_o glorious_a way_n and_o hence_o eph._n 1._o v._n 18_o 19_o 20._o he_o beg_v the_o enlightening_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o they_o that_o they_o may_v know_v v._o 19_o what_o be_v the_o exceed_a greatness_n of_o his_o power_n to_o them-ward_n who_o believe_v etc._n etc._n the_o saint_n often_o feel_v a_o divine_a power_n in_o the_o application_n of_o promise_n but_o they_o can_v tell_v who_o be_v the_o agent_n whither_o satan_n or_o the_o
spirit_n and_o so_o the_o apostle_n ask_v that_o they_o may_v have_v a_o distinct_a knowledge_n hereof_o which_o argue_v that_o the_o spirit_n discover_v that_o there_o be_v a_o improvement_n of_o its_o own_o power_n and_o so_o evidence_v its_o own_o presence_n in_o some_o of_o its_o act_n especial_o in_o give_v a_o knowledge_n of_o the_o hope_n of_o call_v as_o v._o 18._o and_o the_o spirit_n convince_v hereof_o by_o the_o exceed_a greatness_n of_o the_o power_n which_o be_v put_v forth_o 1._o it_o overcome_v the_o heart_n into_o a_o acceptation_n of_o the_o promise_n the_o soul_n see_v its_o own_o utter_a insufficiency_n in_o itself_o to_o make_v such_o a_o application_n of_o a_o promise_n as_o now_o it_o have_v feel_v and_o a_o utter_a averseness_n and_o real_a backwardness_n thereunto_o though_o there_o have_v be_v ability_n it_o be_v ready_a with_o sarah_n to_o laugh_v at_o the_o news_n of_o the_o promise_n or_o to_o say_v with_o those_o 2_o king_n 7.2_o if_o the_o lord_n shall_v make_v window_n in_o heaven_n it_o can_v not_o be_v accomplish_v to_o i_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o able_a to_o withstand_v the_o power_n that_o do_v draw_v it_o that_o way_n 2._o it_o overcome_v satan_n the_o spirit_n discover_v how_o satan_n raise_v his_o utmost_a opposition_n against_o the_o closure_n with_o the_o promise_n and_o many_o temptation_n be_v bring_v to_o fresh_a remembrance_n whereby_o he_o seek_v to_o keep_v it_o at_o the_o great_a distance_n from_o it_o yea_o it_o see_v the_o same_o power_n that_o draw_v to_o the_o promise_n lay_v out_o to_o the_o utmost_a against_o satan_n therein_o and_o from_o hence_o say_v the_o spirit_n it_o can_v not_o be_v thyself_o or_o satan_n for_o both_o run_v cross_a to_o it_o and_o therefore_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o divine_a spirit_n that_o have_v do_v this_o 3._o the_o spirit_n convince_v it_o of_o christ_n faithfulness_n herein_o psal_n 89._o v._n 1_o 2.5.8_o i_o will_v make_v know_v thy_o faithfulness_n to_o all_o generation_n v._o 8._o who_o be_v a_o strong_a lord_n like_o unto_o thou_o or_o to_o thy_o faithfulness_n round_o about_o thou_o so_o a_o soul_n after_o such_o a_o testimony_n be_v exceed_o take_v up_o with_o the_o faithfuine_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o it_o speak_v to_o god_n after_o this_o manner_n thou_o do_v former_o enable_v i_o to_o a_o dependence_n on_o thyself_o in_o this_o promise_n and_o when_o my_o heart_n flag_v faint_v faill_v and_o give_v over_o all_o hope_n of_o it_o yet_o now_o have_v thou_o accomplish_v it_o and_o throw_v the_o mercy_n into_o my_o lap_n and_o discover_v thy_o faithfulness_n when_o i_o be_v unfaithful_a 4._o the_o spirit_n convince_v it_o of_o divine_a goodness_n in_o the_o application_n of_o the_o promise_n psal_n 31._o v._n 19_o o_o how_o great_a be_v thy_o goodness_n his_o soul_n be_v even_o swallow_v up_o with_o admiration_n at_o the_o extensivenes_n of_o it_o o_o how_o great_a &_o v._o 21._o bless_a be_v the_o lord_n that_o have_v show_v i_o marvellous_a kindnes-what_a make_v he_o so_o much_o wonder_n at_o divine_a goodness_n v._o 22._o i_o say_v in_o my_o haste_n i_o be_o cut_v off_o nevertheless_o thou_o hear_v so_o the_o spirit_n cause_v a_o soul_n to_o see_v how_o full_a of_o distrust_n that_o have_v be_v how_o ready_a to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v neglect_v of_o god_n and_o how_o nevertheless_o the_o lord_n deal_v thus_o and_o thus_o gracious_o with_o it_o and_o it_o can_v but_o cry_v out_o o_o how_o great_a be_v thy_o goodness_n it_o be_v even_o wrap_v up_o as_o into_o the_o three_o heaven_n and_o so_o take_v up_o with_o redeem_v love_n in_o the_o application_n of_o some_o promise_n as_o for_o the_o time_n nothing_o can_v put_v it_o upon_o a_o denial_n of_o the_o work_n of_o this_o love_n towards_o it_o and_o thus_o i_o have_v show_v what_o be_v the_o primary_n evidence_n by_o all_o that_o have_v be_v say_v it_o may_v seem_v that_o this_o question_n how_o a_o soul_n may_v know_v this_o testimony_n be_v needless_a for_o such_o as_o be_v actual_o under_o it_o see_v the_o very_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v to_o give_v a_o knowledge_n of_o adoption_n but_o in_o regard_n 1._o afterward_o the_o spirit_n may_v suspend_v its_o operation_n and_o then_o the_o soul_n may_v question_v it_o 2._o some_o have_v strong_a conceit_n and_o opinion_n that_o they_o enjoy_v this_o more_o immediate_a testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n when_o they_o be_v mere_o under_o delusion_n and_o this_o first_o answer_n though_o it_o hold_v out_o the_o primary_n evidence_n of_o it_o unto_o those_o that_o real_o enjoy_v it_o yet_o it_o may_v seem_v not_o to_o reach_v so_o far_o as_o to_o discover_v who_o have_v it_o not_o 3._o immediate_a testimony_n have_v admit_v of_o sign_n for_o their_o confirmation_n to_o we_o luk._n 1._o v._n 18_o 19_o 20._o matth._n 3._o v._n 16_o 17._o act._n 2._o v._n 2_o 3_o 4._o hence_o though_o i_o suppose_v such_o sign_n be_v cease_v yet_o it_o not_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o immediate_a testimony_n to_o assert_v some_o inferior_a evidence_n of_o it_o and_o see_v the_o spirit_n do_v accomplish_v some_o spiritual_a work_n in_o the_o soul_n of_o saint_n in_o and_o by_o its_o witness_v act_n which_o may_v supply_v the_o place_n of_o those_o extraordinary_a sign_n therefore_o i_o shall_v speak_v further_o chap._n xiii_o of_o what_o do_v secondary_o evidence_n the_o truth_n of_o immediate_a testimony_n ans_fw-fr 2._o the_o secondary_a evidence_n of_o the_o more_o immediate_a testimony_n be_v faith_n there_o be_v some_o eminent_a act_n of_o faith_n draw_v out_o by_o it_o but_o delusion_n of_o satan_n or_o the_o single_a testimony_n of_o our_o spirit_n lean_a without_o these_o 1._o faith_n be_v exercise_v upon_o christ_n in_o that_o witness_v word_n which_o be_v apply_v that_o look_v how_o it_o be_v to_o act_v upon_o any_o other_o word_n in_o the_o same_o way_n and_o manner_n it_o do_v upon_o this_o the_o spirit_n appli_v the_o promise_n but_o faith_n receive_v it_o heb._n 10._o v._o 22._o in_o full_a assurance_n of_o faith_n if_o a_o soul_n have_v attain_v full_a assurance_n faith_n have_v a_o hand_n in_o it_o or_o it_o be_v bring_v in_o by_o believe_v and_o therefore_o faith_n be_v call_v the_o evidence_n of_o thing_n not_o see_v heb._n 11.1_o there_o be_v variety_n of_o example_n in_o that_o chapter_n of_o faith_n act_v upon_o various_a occasion_n now_o if_o such_o act_n be_v draw_v out_o upon_o witness_v word_n as_o carry_v a_o correspondency_n with_o they_o unto_o those_o in_o ahel_n abraham_n moses_n etc._n etc._n upon_o other_o or_o such_o word_n than_o they_o be_v conclusive_a or_o witness_v and_o a_o reflection_n upon_o those_o act_n of_o faith_n must_v needs_o be_v very_o useful_a and_o conducible_a towards_o the_o discover_v a_o testimony_n to_o be_v from_o the_o spirit_n a_o review_v of_o a_o evidence_n be_v enough_o to_o decide_v the_o controversy_n 2._o faith_n be_v exercise_v upon_o christ_n in_o other_o promise_n beside_o that_o which_o be_v witness_v while_o the_o soul_n be_v full_a of_o fear_n and_o questioning_n about_o its_o interest_n in_o adopt_v love_n it_o act_v faith_n very_o little_a in_o comparison_n of_o what_o now_o it_o do_v whatsoever_o the_o witness_v word_n give_v it_o assurance_n of_o faith_n now_o live_v upon_o christ_n in_o the_o promise_n for_o it_o heb._n 10.38_o the_o just_a shall_v live_v by_o faith_n psal_n 25.2_o o_o my_o god_n i_o trust_v in_o thou_o psal_n 63._o v._o 1.8_o when_o a_o soul_n have_v a_o sight_n of_o propriety_n in_o god_n this_o put_v it_o upon_o redouble_a act_n of_o say_v if_o it_o can_v say_v my_o god_n it_o can_v but_o say_v i_o trust_v in_o thou_o delusion_n set_v not_o faith_n upon_o the_o wing_n for_o the_o mercy_n that_o it_o suppose_v itself_o to_o have_v interest_n in_o nay_o they_o do_v hinder_v the_o act_n of_o it_o revel_v 3.17_o 18.20_o she_o neglect_v make_v out_o to_o christ_n for_o all_o yea_o shut_v the_o door_n of_o her_o soul_n against_o he_o that_o christ_n stand_v without_o knock_v and_o can_v have_v admittance_n so_o long_o as_o the_o voice_n of_o her_o own_o spirit_n be_v attend_v to_o object_n 1._o but_o when_o be_v a_o word_n or_o promise_n receive_v by_o faith_n and_o so_o when_o do_v faith_n evidence_n a_o testimony_n to_o be_v no_o delusion_n ans_fw-fr 1._o when_o the_o heart_n be_v command_v into_o a_o persuasion_n of_o adoption_n by_o the_o witness_v word_n as_o a_o act_n of_o obedience_n to_o the_o lord_n not_o bare_o when_o there_o be_v a_o give_v in_o of_o a_o word_n as_o i_o shall_v show_v in_o another_o place_n but_o when_o the_o spirit_n overaw_v the_o soul_n with_o the_o majesty_n that_o come_v alongst_o therewith_o to_o yield_v subjection_n to_o
it_o psal_n 42.8_o the_o lord_n will_v command_v his_o love_a kindness_n he_o not_o only_o offer_v it_o to_o the_o soul_n and_o leave_v it_o to_o freedom_n whither_o it_o will_v own_v it_o or_o not_o but_o he_o exercise_v his_o sovereignty_n and_o use_v a_o command_a voice_n that_o his_o love_a kindness_n must_v visit_v it_o and_o that_o in_o a_o sensible_a way_n for_z he_o add_v his_o song_n shall_v be_v with_o i_o psal_n 111._o v._n 9_o he_o have_v send_v redemption_n to_o his_o people_n he_o have_v command_v his_o covenant_n as_o when_o he_o come_v with_o a_o word_n of_o conviction_n he_o command_v stouthearted_a one_o to_o a_o submission_n so_o he_o command_v his_o covenant_n i.e._n his_o promise_n unto_o his_o people_n by_o cause_v they_o to_o own_v he_o therein_o psal_n 133.3_o he_o command_v blessing_n thus_o the_o spirit_n command_v assurance_n into_o the_o saint_n by_o promise_n and_o command_v faith_n to_o own_o his_o love_a kindness_n and_o so_o not_o bare_o a_o persuasion_n that_o this_o promise_n or_o that_o mercy_n be_v i_o do_v make_v the_o act_n of_o faith_n evidence_v but_o that_o divine_a authority_n that_o attend_v the_o word_n to_o the_o heart_n and_o cause_v it_o to_o give_v credit_n thereunto_o out_o of_o respect_n and_o reverence_n to_o the_o lord_n the_o speaker_n not_o every_o one_o that_o have_v a_o persuasion_n that_o christ_n be_v he_o do_v enjoy_v the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o baalim_fw-la say_fw-la my_o god_n numb_a 22.18_o and_o yet_o have_v not_o interest_n in_o god_n as_o his_o god_n and_o they_o matth._n 7.22_o shall_v be_v confident_a of_o their_o interest_n in_o christ_n and_o yet_o shall_v be_v find_v without_o it_o satan_n do_v raise_v such_o false_a confidence_n in_o many_o profane_a wretch_n and_o back_v they_o with_o some_o scripture_n as_o that_o god_n will_v not_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n and_o christ_n come_v to_o save_v sinner_n etc._n etc._n and_o their_o own_o spirit_n conclude_v that_o they_o be_v the_o sinner_n he_o come_v to_o save_v but_o unless_o such_o word_n have_v command_v the_o heart_n into_o such_o a_o persuasion_n out_o of_o respect_n to_o the_o lord_n they_o be_v not_o evidence_v 2._o when_o those_o undoubted_o sinful_a objection_n that_o swarm_v in_o the_o soul_n before_o be_v suppress_v by_o the_o reception_n of_o the_o word_n unbelief_n be_v the_o great_a sin_n yet_o soul_n be_v more_o unapt_a to_o be_v sensible_a of_o and_o affect_v with_o that_o then_o with_o other_o sin_n but_o if_o the_o spirit_n have_v act_v faith_n upon_o christ_n in_o any_o promise_n than_o it_o be_v pain_v and_o afflict_v with_o the_o remembrance_n of_o its_o former_a mistrustfulness_n and_o rise_v up_o in_o opposition_n against_o it_o as_o psal_n 42._o v._n 5.8_o why_o be_v thou_o cast_v down_o o_o my_o soul_n why_o be_v thou_o disquiet_v within_o i_o hope_v in_o god_n before_o it_o give_v way_n to_o and_o feed_v the_o carnal_a reason_n of_o its_o own_o spirit_n against_o the_o free_a promise_n of_o god_n but_o now_o it_o call_v off_o its_o heart_n from_o these_o and_o call_v it_o up_o to_o trust_v in_o god_n faith_n be_v call_v a_o evidence_n heb._n 11.1_o it_o be_v a_o logical_a term_n import_v a_o conviction_n by_o way_n of_o dispute_n as_o reason_n do_v by_o premise_n draw_v up_o certain_a conclusion_n about_o matter_n within_o its_o sphere_n so_o faith_n do_v something_o answerable_a though_o the_o thing_n it_o be_v conversant_a about_o be_v out_o of_o the_o reach_n of_o sense_n and_o reason_n that_o do_v in_o able_a the_o soul_n by_o scriptural_a principle_n and_o ground_n to_o dispute_v down_o cavil_n and_o carnal_a reason_n against_o the_o free_a promise_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v a_o evidence_n delusion_n do_v stupefy_v man_n that_o they_o seek_v not_o for_o a_o satisfactory_a deliverance_n from_o objection_n but_o the_o spirit_n like_o the_o sun_n cause_v such_o mist_n of_o darkness_n to_o flee_v away_o and_o put_v enough_o into_o the_o mouth_n to_o answer_v satan_n in_o all_o 3._o when_o its_o reception_n of_o the_o word_n or_o promise_n cause_v selfe-abasement_n matth._n 15.27_o the_o woman_n be_v so_o deep_o sensible_a of_o her_o unworthines_n that_o she_o acknowledge_v herself_o to_o be_v a_o dog_n and_o then_o present_o christ_n ow_v her_o faith_n v._o 28._o o_o woman_n great_a be_v thy_o faith_n great_a faith_n cause_v great_a selfe-abasement_n when_o all_o matter_n of_o discouragement_n that_o be_v throw_v in_o the_o soul_n way_n to_o its_o mercy_n tend_v to_o the_o make_v it_o sensible_a of_o its_o own_o nothingnes_n and_o yet_o cause_v it_o to_o lay_v fast_o hold_v of_o the_o promise_n and_o when_o the_o strong_a its_o assurance_n of_o the_o mercy_n be_v the_o great_a selfe-annihilation_a and_o the_o less_o selfe-confidence_n than_o faith_n be_v act_v and_o christ_n take_v notice_n of_o and_o set_v a_o character_n of_o respect_n upon_o such_o act_n of_o faith_n but_o that_o which_o cause_v selfe-advancement_n be_v the_o voice_n of_o thy_o own_o spirit_n or_o a_o delusion_n of_o satan_n mark_n 14.31_o peter_n be_v carry_v out_o with_o vehemency_n of_o affection_n and_o resolution_n for_o christ_n he_o declare_v his_o prefer_v christ_n before_o his_o own_o life_n and_o yet_o this_o be_v but_o the_o voice_n of_o his_o own_o spirit_n because_o it_o do_v spring_n from_o selfe-confidence_n which_o be_v opposite_a unto_o faith_n 4._o when_o the_o heart_n be_v carry_v out_o christ-ward_n by_o the_o reception_n of_o any_o promise_n believe_v be_v often_o call_v a_o come_n to_o christ_n as_o joh._n 6._o v._n 35.37_o and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n soul_n departure_n from_o god_n be_v resolve_v into_o unbelief_n heb._n 3.12_o when_o there_o be_v not_o only_o a_o persuasion_n wrought_v by_o the_o promise_n that_o christ_n be_v i_o etc._n etc._n but_o the_o whole_a heart_n run_v out_o after_o christ_n upon_o the_o application_n of_o it_o if_o it_o take_v the_o promise_n as_o from_o his_o hand_n eph._n 3.6_o and_o ow_v he_o in_o the_o purchase_n of_o the_o mercy_n it_o be_v assure_v of_o &_o build_v its_o confidence_n upon_o he_o for_o the_o communication_n of_o they_o and_o be_v lay_v under_o strong_a obligation_n &_o engagement_n to_o christ_n for_o they_o it_o cry_v out_o what_o shall_v i_o render_v to_o he_o psal_n 116.12_o account_v nothing_o too_o dear_a for_o he_o and_o make_v improvement_n of_o they_o by_o and_o for_o christ_n than_o the_o word_n be_v from_o christ_n so_o rom._n 8._o v._n 35._o who_o shall_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n i.e._n from_o that_o love_n wherewith_o we_o love_v christ_n and_o thence_o he_o add_v shall_v tribulation_n or_o distress_n or_o persecution_n or_o famine_n etc._n etc._n i._n e._n none_o of_o these_o hardship_n shall_v break_v off_o our_o love_n to_o he_o v._o 36._o as_o it_o be_v write_v for_o thy_o sake_n we_o be_v kill_v all_o the_o day_n long_o and_o when_o be_v their_o love_n to_o christ_n so_o strong_a v._o 33.38_o 39_o it_o be_v when_o their_o persuasion_n be_v as_o strong_a of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n to_o they_o and_o now_o they_o oppose_v christ_n without_o they_o against_o all_o charge_n v._o 33._o and_o not_o the_o persuasion_n within_o themselves_o yet_o that_o persuasion_n be_v useful_a that_o way_n not_o abstractive_o from_o christ_n but_o as_o it_o be_v a_o furtherance_n to_o their_o hearty_a own_n of_o he_o faith_n make_v use_v of_o such_o a_o general_a as_o that_o christ_n die_v against_o all_o charge_n that_o be_v bring_v in_o against_o a_o particular_a soul_n you_o may_v have_v such_o strong_a confidence_n of_o your_o interest_n in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n as_o no_o argument_n a_o man_n can_v use_v can_v beat_v you_o off_o from_o these_o and_o yet_o you_o may_v be_v delude_v if_o your_o heart_n be_v not_o answerable_o draw_v out_o after_o christ_n to_o the_o strength_n of_o your_o confidence_n but_o if_o they_o be_v build_v and_o botrome_v upon_o he_o and_o his_o free_a favour_n in_o the_o free_a promise_n as_o psal_n 30.7_o and_o if_o your_o affection_n to_o christ_n rise_v as_o high_a and_o be_v as_o strong_a as_o your_o persuasion_n of_o his_o love_n than_o you_o have_v enjoy_v the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o thus_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n in_o that_o faith_n which_o receive_v witness_v word_n beside_o the_o persuasion_n of_o the_o thing_n witness_v which_o may_v difference_n a_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o this_o more_o immediate_a way_n from_o a_o delusion_n of_o satan_n or_o our_o own_o spirit_n object_n 2._o but_o may_v i_o not_o be_v very_o liable_a to_o be_v deceive_v about_o such_o act_n of_o faith_n see_v no_o scripture_n either_o express_o or_o by_o consequence_n say_v of_o any_o particular_a man_n that_o
joh._n 3.9_o for_o his_o seed_n remain_v in_o he_o and_o he_o can_v sin_v the_o word_n within_o be_v a_o seed_n that_o oppose_v sin_n thou_o may_v have_v a_o hundred_o scripture_n forbid_v a_o particular_a sin_n which_o the_o flesh_n lu_v towards_o and_o as_o many_o promise_n of_o help_n against_o it_o all_o these_o may_v be_v eye_v and_o think_v upon_o and_o some_o affection_n may_v be_v slight_o touch_v herewith_o but_o if_o thy_o heart_n have_v not_o treasure_v up_o these_o word_n thou_o may_v be_v rush_v into_o the_o sin_n in_o the_o face_n of_o all_o these_o but_o when_o the_o heart_n engage_v by_o the_o word_n against_o sin_n than_o it_o be_v evidence_v for_o the_o word_n be_v the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n eph._n 6.17_o the_o follow_a particular_n will_v further_a evidence_n when_o the_o contest_v be_v between_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o spirit_n 5._o when_o the_o soul_n choose_v freedom_n from_o sin_n do_v lead_v to_o and_o end_n in_o the_o mortification_n of_o sin_n that_o this_o be_v a_o evidence_n of_o adoption_n be_v clear_a rom._n 8.13_o if_o you_o by_o the_o spirit_n do_v mortify_v the_o deed_n of_o the_o body_n you_o shall_v live_v there_o may_v be_v a_o cessation_n from_o the_o act_n of_o a_o sin_n and_o yet_o no_o mortification_n of_o it_o he_o that_o have_v be_v a_o drunkard_n swearer_n sabbath-breaker_n etc._n etc._n may_v desist_v from_o these_o profane_a practice_n which_o he_o have_v follow_v and_o yet_o be_v under_o the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n still_o act._n 8.11.13_o there_o may_v be_v a_o change_n of_o sin_n and_o no_o change_n of_o heart_n one_o sin_n may_v be_v leave_v and_o another_o take_v in_o the_o room_n of_o it_o a_o cessation_n chief_o respect_v the_o act_n of_o sin_n and_o aim_v at_o the_o repress_v of_o they_o but_o mortification_n strike_v at_o the_o root_n the_o nature_n of_o sin_n rom._n 7.24_o aim_v at_o the_o destruction_n of_o it_o rom._n 6.6_o that_o the_o body_n of_o sin_n may_v be_v destroy_v yea_o in_o some_o measure_n it_o extinguish_v the_o vigour_n and_o expel_v or_o drive_v out_o the_o very_a life_n of_o sin_n 6._o when_o there_o be_v a_o irreconcilable_a opposition_n in_o the_o soul_n against_o sin_n a_o man_n may_v mislike_v the_o way_n it_o come_v in_o as_o have_v some_o ill_a consequence_n attend_v it_o and_o there_o may_v be_v a_o kind_n of_o part_v upon_o it_o sin_n may_v seem_v to_o suffer_v banishment_n for_o a_o time_n upon_o some_o particular_a discontent_n against_o it_o matth._n 12._o v._n 43_o 44_o 45._o the_o unclean_a spirit_n i.e._n sin_n or_o satan_n be_v go_v out_o of_o a_o man_n but_o five_o 44._o it_o return_v there_o be_v a_o re-entrance_n and_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o that_o man_n be_v worse_a than_o the_o beginning_n but_o if_o there_o be_v such_o enmity_n against_o and_o detestation_n of_o sin_n as_o it_o can_v upon_o no_o term_n admit_v of_o any_o reconciliation_n that_o mountain_n of_o gold_n nor_o the_o great_a advantage_n can_v win_v the_o least_o token_n of_o favour_n or_o respect_n from_o the_o soul_n towards_o sin_n but_o it_o cry_v out_o under_o it_o as_o rom._n 7.24_o o_o wretched_a man_n that_o i_o be_o than_o it_o be_v free_v from_o the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n 7._o when_o it_o be_v upon_o spiritual_a and_o evangelicall_n account_n that_o it_o choose_v freedom_n from_o sin_n a_o man_n may_v be_v incense_v against_o sin_n upon_o natural_a civil_a moral_a and_o religious_a account_n and_o yet_o be_v under_o the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n still_o rom._n 10.2_o they_o have_v a_o zeal_n of_o god_n qu_n when_o do_v a_o man_n choose_v freedom_n from_o sin_n upon_o evangelicall_n account_n ans_fw-fr 1._o when_o the_o contrariety_n of_o sin_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n do_v disengage_a the_o heart_n from_o it_o christ_n be_v often_o call_v a_o king_n a_o lord_n a_o lawgiver_n to_o note_n that_o all_o command_n whither_o enjoin_v duty_n or_o forbid_a sin_n they_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v not_o only_o as_o from_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o all-powerfull_a and_o infinite_o just_a god_n but_o as_o from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o mediator_n not_o but_o that_o a_o soul_n be_v to_o look_v upon_o sin_n as_o a_o violation_n of_o the_o father_n will_n yet_o his_o will_n not_o according_a to_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o old_a covenant_n gal._n 3._o v._n 10_o 11._o but_o as_o he_o have_v reveal_v it_o in_o the_o new_a covenant_n &_o as_o command_v over_o again_o by_o christ_n joh._n 14.15_o keep_v my_o commandment_n &_o 21.23_o joh._n 13.34_o 1_o joh._n 2.8_o matth._n 5.27_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n 1_o cor._n 9.21_o i_o be_o under_o the_o law_n to_o christ_n so_o that_o the_o low_a duty_n ought_v to_o be_v service_n to_o christ_n eph._n 6._o five_o 5_o 6._o servant_n be_v to_o obey_v their_o master_n in_o singleness_n of_o heart_n as_o unto_o christ_n you_o may_v fear_v sin_n and_o be_v sorry_a for_o it_o and_o make_v opposition_n against_o it_o as_o contrary_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n as_o creator_n but_o if_o its_o strike_v at_o christ_n as_o redeemer_n carry_v not_o out_o against_o sin_n it_o be_v not_o evangelicall_n nor_o witness_v 2._o when_o a_o sight_n of_o the_o injury_n offer_v to_o christ_n by_o sin_n do_v carry_v out_o the_o heart_n against_o it_o a_o man_n may_v have_v a_o sorrow_n for_o a_o fear_n of_o and_o hatred_n against_o sin_n as_o procure_v discredit_n or_o loss_n of_o reputation_n suffering_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o be_v under_o the_o dominion_n of_o it_o still_o but_o when_o the_o soul_n be_v touch_v with_o a_o deep_a sense_n of_o it_o in_o christ_n suffering_n for_o and_o by_o it_o when_o its_o pierce_a wound_a and_o grieve_v of_o christ_n do_v melt_v the_o heart_n for_o it_o than_o it_o act_v evangelical_o zech._n 12.10_o 3._o when_o a_o discovery_n of_o the_o love_n kindness_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n be_v the_o constrain_a thing_n from_o sin_n when_o the_o appearance_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n teach_v to_o deny_v ungodliness_n titus_n 2.13_o and_o the_o goodness_n of_o the_o lord_n lead_v to_o repentance_n rom._n 2.4_o ingenuity_n do_v exceed_o affect_v saul_n heart_n with_o his_o sin_n 1_o sam._n 26.21_o david_n have_v but_o cut_v asunder_o the_o lap_n of_o his_o garment_n when_o he_o may_v have_v cut_v asunder_o the_o thread_n of_o his_o life_n and_o this_o love_n and_o kindness_n of_o david_n in_o spare_v his_o life_n draw_v out_o a_o acknowledgement_n of_o his_o sin_n in_o the_o aggravation_n of_o it_o for_o the_o present_a i_o have_v sin_v and_o err_v exceed_o yea_o it_o put_v he_o upon_o resolution_n against_o it_o for_o the_o future_a i_o will_v no_o more_o do_v thou_o harm_n a_o man_n may_v be_v much_o affect_v with_o a_o sin_n upon_o some_o great_a deliverance_n or_o the_o like_a may_v confess_v it_o in_o its_o aggravation_n and_o that_o upon_o very_o ingenuous_a consideration_n and_o yet_o be_v under_o the_o dominion_n of_o it_o still_o as_o saul_n be_v but_o see_v how_o the_o lord_n seek_v to_o affect_v the_o bear_v it_o of_o david_n with_o his_o sin_n 2_o sam._n 12._o v._n 7_o 8_o 9_o i_o have_v anoint_v thou_o king_n over_o israel_n etc._n etc._n and_o if_o this_o have_v be_v too_o little_o i_o will_v moreover_o have_v give_v unto_o thou_o such_o and_o such_o thing_n wherefore_o have_v thou_o despise_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o when_o this_o love_n of_o god_n have_v evercome_v his_o heart_n into_o a_o acknowledgement_n of_o his_o sin_n v._o 13._o present_o he_o have_v a_o sentence_n of_o absolution_n he_o seem_v to_o be_v interrupt_v in_o speak_v out_o his_o sorrow_n with_o this_o the_o lord_n also_o have_v put_v away_o thy_o sin_n when_o the_o remembrance_n of_o the_o former_a lovingkindness_n of_o the_o lord_n do_v melt_v the_o heart_n for_o sin_n this_o be_v soon_o follow_v up_o with_o a_o testimony_n of_o remission_n 4._o when_o it_o aim_v at_o a_o conformity_n unto_o christ_n in_o its_o seek_a freedom_n from_o sin_n 1_o pet._n 2.21_o 22_o 23._o custom_n and_o the_o example_n of_o forefather_n and_o the_o credit_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o country_n or_o place_n a_o man_n live_v in_o as_o also_o education_n etc._n etc._n may_v prevail_v so_o far_o as_o to_o restrain_v very_o much_o and_o make_v a_o man_n discountenance_v sin_n but_o except_o christ_n be_v thy_o pattern_n of_o imitation_n and_o thy_o sorrow_n be_v because_o thou_o fall_v so_o short_a of_o he_o he_o regard_v it_o not_o 5._o when_o it_o aim_v at_o the_o come_n up_o to_o some_o special_a gospel_n duty_n or_o the_o attainment_n of_o some_o special_a gospel_n privilege_n in_o seek_v freedom_n from_o sin_n a_o man_n may_v see_v that_o sin_n cross_v some_o carnal_a
a_o place_n of_o but_o little_a beauty_n glory_n or_o felicity_n if_o communion_n with_o god_n and_o christ_n be_v not_o to_o be_v enjoy_v in_o it_o other_o desire_v christ_n only_o for_o heaven_n he_o desire_v heaven_n chief_o for_o christ_n natural_a man_n be_v even_o drink_v and_o swallow_v up_o in_o creature_n delight_n but_o the_o interest_n of_o christ_n prevail_v with_o a_o gracious_a heart_n against_o all_o other_o interest_n he_o may_v be_v interrupt_v in_o his_o motion_n to_o christ_n in_o particular_a act_n but_o he_o be_v the_o prime_n principal_a object_n his_o soul_n be_v move_v and_o bend_v towards_o set_v and_o fix_v upon_o and_o give_v up_o to_o rom._n 8.5_o phil._n 3.20_o coloss_n 1.18_o 1_o pet._n 2.7_o col._n 3.11_o christ_n be_v all_o and_o in_o all_o otherthing_n be_v as_o nothing_o to_o he_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o enjoy_v in_o they_o he_o be_v all_o in_o all_o enjoyment_n all_o in_o all_o inlargement_n all_o in_o all_o duty_n all_o in_o all_o comfort_n other_o apprehend_v that_o christ_n it_o better_a than_o the_o gnawing_n of_o a_o accuse_a conscience_n better_a than_o the_o company_n of_o damn_a spirit_n better_a than_o flame_n but_o they_o see_v no_o such_o beauty_n or_o excellency_n in_o christ_n as_o shall_v make_v he_o best_o or_o all_o in_o all_o here_o on_o earth_n they_o can_v verbal_o own_o christ_n as_o superlative_o excellent_a but_o practital_o they_o deny_v it_o and_o they_o know_v not_o christ_n in_o those_o spiritual_a excellency_n which_o advance_v he_o in_o the_o eye_n of_o saint_n take_v he_o as_o clothe_v with_o bolines_n and_o appear_v against_o sin_n etc._n etc._n and_o they_o prefer_v other_o thing_n that_o be_v base_a and_o low_a before_o he_o the_o follow_a particular_n will_v further_o discover_v when_o christ_n be_v all_o in_o all_o 2._o from_o his_o spend_v his_o high_a desire_n and_o endeavour_n after_o attain_v communion_n with_o god_n in_o christ_n when_o the_o heart_n be_v set_v upon_o christ_n or_o turn_v christ-ward_n it_o can_v stand_v still_o without_o he_o it_o must_v be_v wait_v for_o he_o and_o inquire_v after_o he_o with_o utmost_a diligence_n cant._n 3.3_o see_v you_o not_o he_o who_o my_o soul_n love_v psal_n 130.5_o 6._o phil._n 3.14_o 3._o from_o his_o willingness_n to_o part_v with_o all_o other_o thing_n at_o christ_n call_n or_o for_o his_o sake_n luk._n 14.26.33_o whosoever_o forsake_v not_o all_v that_o he_o have_v 29._o mark_n 8.35_o &_o 10._o v._o 29._o he_o can_v be_v my_o disciple_n matth._n 10.37_o he_o that_o love_v father_n or_o mother_n more_a then_o i_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o i_o 4._o from_o the_o carriage_n of_o his_o heart_n under_o his_o withdrawing_n when_o these_o procure_v such_o heart-sickness_n as_o can_v be_v cure_v no_o way_n but_o by_o his_o returning_n to_o it_o cant._n 5._o v._n 6.8_o tell_v he_o i_o be_o sick_a of_o love_n when_o the_o fear_n of_o hell_n be_v not_o upon_o they_o yet_o o_o the_o sigh_n sobbing_n cry_n faint_n of_o love-sick_a soul_n for_o christ_n presence_n no_o quiet_a or_o satisfaction_n without_o he_o like_o the_o child_n that_o nothing_o can_v still_o but_o the_o breast_n so_o nothing_o can_v fill_v up_o christ_n room_n in_o the_o soul_n it_o reckon_v itself_o empty_a in_o the_o midst_n of_o fullness_n without_o he_o it_o be_v resolve_v for_o ever_o to_o go_v in_o widowhood_n if_o he_o will_v not_o own_v it_o as_o his_o spouse_n this_o argue_v a_o consent_n of_o heart_n to_o the_o match_n and_o so_o a_o marriage_n union_n between_o christ_n and_o the_o soul_n 5._o from_o his_o enjoyment_n of_o the_o leading_n of_o the_o spirit_n these_o be_v a_o certain_a infallible_a evidence_n of_o adoption_n to_o all_o that_o have_v they_o rom._n 8.14_o for_o as_o many_o as_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n they_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n chap._n xx._n of_o the_o soul_n enjoy_v the_o leading_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o when_o qu_n when_o do_v a_o soul_n enjoy_v the_o leading_n of_o the_o spirit_n answ_n 1._o when_o a_o compliance_n with_o the_o will_n of_o christ_n become_v natural_a to_o the_o soul_n as_o there_o be_v a_o propensitie_n in_o light_a thing_n to_o move_v upward_o and_o in_o heavy_a thing_n to_o move_v downward_o so_o in_o the_o soul_n to_o move_v christ-ward_n suppose_v there_o be_v no_o wrath_n as_o the_o consequence_n of_o disobedience_n nor_o no_o reward_n as_o the_o effect_n of_o gospel_n obedience_n yet_o the_o sweetness_n of_o the_o way_n themselves_o &_o the_o respect_n it_o owe_v to_o the_o will_n of_o christ_n will_v be_v as_o the_o heart_n unto_o a_o own_n of_o christ_n therein_o psal_n 119.30.173_o i_o have_v choose_n the_o way_n of_o truth_n etc._n etc._n and_o v._o 35._o for_o therein_o i_o delight_v so_o rom._n 7.22_o &_o rom._n 8._o v._n 1_o 2._o for_o the_o law_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n have_v make_v i_o free_a from_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n and_o death_n carnal_a man_n in_o their_o heart_n call_v a_o liberty_n for_o sin_n freedom_n but_o such_o as_o be_v indeed_o free_v from_o condemnation_n and_o walk_v after_o the_o spirit_n they_o call_v this_o their_o liberty_n to_o be_v free_a for_o christ_n and_o from_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n and_o reckon_v obligation_n to_o sin_v the_o great_a bondage_n and_o thraldom_n in_o the_o world_n the_o spirit_n raise_v a_o admirable_a freeness_n in_o the_o soul_n to_o walk_v in_o the_o way_n of_o christ_n 2_o corin._n 3.17_o where_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v there_o be_v liberty_n and_o hence_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n be_v oppose_v unto_o the_o spirit_n of_o bondage_n rom._n 8.15_o a_o man_n may_v exercise_v himself_o in_o the_o external_a part_n of_o all_o duty_n that_o a_o christian_n be_v engage_v to_o and_o yet_o be_v without_o the_o leading_n of_o the_o spirit_n he_o may_v have_v many_o carnal_a enforcement_n hereunto_o but_o unless_o there_o be_v a_o liberty_n of_o heart_n to_o these_o way_n that_o he_o will_v not_o but_o be_v employ_v in_o they_o and_o account_v it_o a_o high_a favour_n from_o the_o lord_n that_o he_o will_v use_v he_o in_o any_o service_n for_o himself_o and_o find_v more_o delectation_n in_o these_o then_o in_o any_o other_o way_n that_o it_o become_v even_o meat_n and_o drink_v to_o he_o to_o do_v the_o lord_n service_n and_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o great_a complaint_n and_o lamentation_n that_o he_o can_v do_v no_o more_o for_o the_o lord_n that_o he_o find_v a_o backwardness_n in_o himself_o or_o any_o contrary_a principle_n which_o seek_v to_o obstruct_v and_o hinder_v his_o follow_v the_o lord_n in_o his_o way_n rom._n 7.22_o 23._o then_o he_o enjoy_v the_o leading_n of_o the_o spirit_n 2._o when_o it_o have_v corroboration_n or_o assistance_n against_o those_o impediment_n that_o will_v hinder_v it_o in_o walk_v in_o the_o way_n of_o christ_n or_o the_o spirit_n lead_v by_o remove_v these_o carnal_a man_n wonder_v that_o any_o shall_v complain_v for_o want_v of_o strength_n unto_o duty_n they_o can_v easy_o come_v up_o to_o they_o but_o it_o arise_v partly_o from_o satan_n not_o molest_v they_o in_o the_o performance_n of_o duty_n because_o they_o look_v not_o beyond_o the_o external_a part_n of_o it_o they_o strive_v not_o to_o act_v in_o a_o right_a manner_n or_o for_o right_a end_n or_o because_o they_o be_v insensible_a of_o the_o work_n of_o corruption_n when_o yet_o it_o do_v act_v but_o a_o gracious_a heart_n find_v that_o if_o it_o be_v not_o strengthen_v by_o a_o power_n beyond_o its_o own_o it_o can_v act_v any_o grace_n or_o perform_v any_o duty_n in_o a_o acceptable_a way_n to_o the_o lord_n and_o hence_o the_o apostle_n pray_v ephes_n 3.16_o that_o they_o may_v be_v strengthen_v with_o might_n by_o his_o spirit_n in_o the_o inner_a man_n israel_n be_v say_v to_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n isai_n 63._o v._n 11_o 12_o 13_o 14._o and_o how_o do_v he_o lead_v they_o it_o be_v by_o divide_v the_o water_n before_o they_o and_o keep_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o stumble_v i.e._n the_o lord_n throw_v up_o and_o remoove_v impediment_n out_o of_o their_o way_n and_o take_v away_o what_o may_v cause_v they_o to_o fall_v and_o this_o be_v his_o lead_n of_o they_o so_o if_o thou_o have_v be_v eager_o pursue_v by_o satan_n and_o he_o have_v rage_v against_o thou_o like_o a_o lion_n spoil_v of_o his_o whelp_n that_o thou_o be_v beset_v with_o temptation_n and_o do_v find_v many_o and_o strong_a lusting_n of_o the_o flesh_n to_o hinder_v thy_o follow_v of_o the_o lord_n christ_n in_o the_o way_n of_o his_o appointment_n and_o if_o such_o mountain_n have_v be_v make_v plain_n and_o corruption_n bear_v down_o when_o thou_o have_v find_v thy_o heart_n
so_o full_a of_o deadness_n hardness_n unbelief_n and_o all_o manner_n of_o distemper_n that_o thou_o have_v even_o despair_v of_o act_v in_o the_o duty_n as_o prayer_n etc._n etc._n in_o any_o acceptable_a way_n to_o the_o lord_n and_o like_o the_o israelite_n thou_o have_v cry_v out_o that_o thy_o destruction_n be_v at_o hand_n yet_o if_o these_o spiritual_a enemy_n have_v be_v conquer_v and_o thy_o heart_n let_v out_o more_o than_o at_o other_o time_n towards_o christ_n here_o be_v the_o leading_n of_o the_o spirit_n rom._n 8.13_o if_o you_o by_o the_o spirit_n mortify_v v._n 14_o for_o as_o many_o as_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n the_o particle_n for_o argue_v mortification_n to_o appertain_v unto_o the_o leading_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o so_o gal._n 5._o v._n 16.18_o those_o that_o be_v lead_v and_o do_v walk_v by_o the_o spirit_n they_o shall_v not_o fulfil_v the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n not_o as_o if_o they_o be_v perfect_a and_o have_v no_o sin_n in_o they_o for_o he_o add_v v._o 17._o the_o flesh_n lu_v against_o the_o spirit_n it_o do_v not_o quite_o hinder_v the_o stir_n no_o nor_o the_o prevailing_n of_o sin_n for_o he_o say_v you_o can_v do_v what_o you_o will_v i.e._n you_o can_v act_v so_o spiritual_o and_o so_o circumspect_o as_o you_o will_v you_o can_v yet_o you_o will_v the_o will_n prevail_v against_o and_o get_v the_o upperhand_n of_o corruption_n even_o when_o duty_n be_v hinder_v or_o sin_n act_v by_o the_o soul_n that_o corruption_n be_v not_o predominant_a in_o the_o soul_n then_o they_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n when_o thy_o love_n to_o christ_n be_v predominant_a and_o ordinary_o prevail_v against_o thy_o sinful_a love_n to_o other_o thing_n below_o christ_n and_o thy_o joy_n in_o the_o lord_n be_v predominant_a or_o bear_v sway_n against_o thy_o sinful_a and_o carnal_a joy_n in_o creature_n or_o lust_n and_o thy_o peace_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n help_v thou_o to_o see_v that_o false_a peace_n which_o thou_o have_v take_v up_o from_o other_o ground_n and_o thy_o faith_n be_v predominant_a against_o thy_o unbelief_n which_o discover_v itself_o former_o in_o cause_v thou_o to_o choose_v and_o embrace_v other_o object_n beside_o christ_n or_o in_o thy_o not_o come_v up_o to_o a_o hearty_a accept_n of_o he_o and_o so_o for_o all_o other_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n v._o 22_o 23._o there_o be_v a_o opposition_n make_v between_o the_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n v._o 19.22_o to_o show_v that_o when_o the_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v keep_v underneath_o and_o prevail_v against_o than_o a_o soul_n enjoy_v the_o leading_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o v._o 16.18_o 3_o when_o the_o heart_n be_v under_o powerful_a drawing_n christ-ward_n in_o be_v exercise_v in_o the_o way_n of_o christ_n 1_o there_o must_v be_v drawing_n the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v to_o be_v move_v act_v guide_v etc._n etc._n it_o may_v be_v take_v from_o blind_a man_n that_o stand_v in_o need_n not_o only_o of_o direction_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n but_o of_o a_o hand_n to_o lead_v help_v and_o uphold_v in_o a_o way_n or_o from_o weak_a person_n as_o young_a child_n that_o need_v a_o hand_n to_o suportand_v sustain_v yea_o a_o arm_n to_o carry_v they_o man_n can_v go_v alone_o in_o the_o way_n of_o christ_n they_o may_v pray_v and_o hear_v etc._n etc._n but_o they_o can_v mix_v faith_n with_o these_o or_o act_v spiritual_o if_o the_o spirit_n have_v not_o a_o great_a stroke_n in_o such_o action_n than_o themselves_o joh._n 15.5_o without_o i_o say_v christ_n you_o can_v do_v nothing_o i_o e._n nothing_o in_o a_o please_a or_o acceptable_a way_n to_o god_n psal_n 17.5_o and_o the_o spouse_n cry_v out_o cant._n 1.4_o draw_v i_o it_o denote_v impotency_n and_o unaptnes_n in_o the_o soul_n for_o such_o a_o motion_n no_o run_v after_o christ_n without_o drawing_n from_o he_o 2._o they_o must_v be_v heart-drawing_n if_o the_o heart_n be_v want_v though_o a_o man_n perform_v never_o so_o many_o duty_n yet_o he_o be_v destitute_a of_o the_o leading_n of_o the_o spirit_n deut._n 4._o v._o 29._o &_o 6._o v._o 5_o &_o 10._o v._o 12._o all_o love_n or_o service_n that_o find_v acceptance_n with_o the_o lord_n be_v with_o all_o the_o heart_n i_o e._n with_o the_o rule_n or_o prevail_a part_n of_o it_o rom._n 7._o v._n 22_o 23._o there_o be_v a_o law_n in_o the_o mind_n i_o e._n powerful_a obligation_n and_o engagement_n lay_v upon_o that_o towards_o christ_n rom._n 6.17_o the_o low_a duty_n require_v the_o heart_n to_o the_o right_a performance_n of_o they_o eph._n 6._o v._n 5_o 6._o 3._o the_o drawing_n of_o the_o heart_n must_v be_v christ-ward_n a_o man_n may_v be_v furnish_v with_o eminent_a gift_n and_o may_v have_v suitable_a assistance_n in_o the_o lay_n out_o of_o those_o gift_n from_o the_o spirit_n and_o yet_o may_v be_v without_o the_o leading_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o saul_n 1_o sam._n 10.10_o and_o christ_n shall_v say_v depart_v from_o i_o to_o many_o that_o have_v prophesy_v and_o cast_v out_o devil_n in_o his_o name_n math._n 7.22_o 23._o a_o man_n may_v have_v preach_v gift_n and_o pray_v gift_n yea_o wonder-working_a gift_n and_o may_v lay_v out_o these_o to_o the_o admiration_n of_o other_o and_o all_o these_o be_v from_o the_o spirit_n 1_o corin._n 12._o v._n 8_o 9_o 10_o 11._o and_o yet_o be_v without_o sonship_n and_o therefore_o without_o the_o leading_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o witness_n adoption_n rom._n 8.14_o these_o be_v rather_o for_o the_o profit_n of_o other_o then_o for_o his_o that_o have_v they_o gift_n exercise_v can_v suppress_v corruption_n in_o a_o man_n own_o heart_n and_o hence_o though_o they_o use_v their_o gift_n yet_o they_o be_v call_v worker_n of_o iniquity_n math._n 7.23_o gift_n do_v not_o carry_v out_o the_o heart_n towards_o christ_n but_o grace_n do_v and_o if_o in_o the_o improvement_n of_o preach_v or_o pray_v gift_n thy_o heart_n have_v be_v carry_v out_o christ-ward_n though_o thou_o have_v find_v more_o streightning_n in_o expression_n then_o at_o other_o time_n yet_o thou_o have_v enjoy_v the_o leading_n of_o the_o spirit_n jerem._n 30._o v._o 21._o i_o will_v cause_v he_o to_o draw_v near_o for_o who_o be_v this_o that_o engage_v his_o heart_n to_o approach_v unto_o i_o then_o a_o man_n be_v cause_v by_o the_o lord_n to_o draw_v near_o unto_o he_o in_o any_o service_n when_o there_o be_v real_a engagement_n upon_o his_o heart_n towards_o god_n and_o such_o the_o lord_n will_v own_v as_o he_o v._o 22._o and_o you_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n and_o i_o will_v be_v your_o god_n it_o a_o man_n have_v have_v never_o so_o much_o enlargednesse_n in_o expression_n in_o prayer_n yet_o if_o his_o heart_n have_v not_o be_v under_o drawing_n towards_o christ_n it_o be_v not_o witness_v cant._n 1.4_o isai_n 29.13_o 14._o but_o if_o a_o duty_n have_v be_v of_o advantage_n that_o way_n than_o thou_o have_v have_v the_o leading_n of_o the_o spirit_n how_o mean_a soever_o the_o duty_n have_v seem_v to_o be_v ephes_n 6.6_o 4._o when_o it_o have_v be_v enable_v to_o own_o the_o mediation_n of_o christ_n and_o gospel_n promise_v in_o its_o act_n a_o man_n heart_n may_v real_o go_v out_o after_o some_o enjoyment_n and_o fain_o he_o will_v have_v these_o as_o riches_n freedom_n from_o affliction_n etc._n etc._n he_o may_v pray_v earnest_o for_o they_o and_o yet_o he_o may_v be_v without_o the_o leading_n of_o the_o spirit_n it_o be_v the_o work_n of_o a_o faithful_a leader_n to_o carry_v a_o man_n in_o the_o right_a way_n and_o the_o spirit_n be_v promise_v to_o speak_v from_o god_n to_o we_o for_o direction_n into_o the_o way_n we_o shall_v choose_v isa_n 30._o v._n 21._o thy_o ear_n shall_v hear_v a_o voice_n behind_o thou_o say_v this_o be_v the_o way_n walk_v you_o in_o it_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o account_v himself_o glorify_v by_o the_o best_a and_o most_o shine_v service_n a_o soul_n can_v perform_v nor_o do_v not_o accept_v of_o they_o if_o it_o deal_v not_o with_o he_o by_o the_o mediator_n eph._n 1.6_o &_o 3._o v._o 12._o 1_o pet._n 2.5_o to_o offer_v up_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n acceptable_a to_o god_n by_o jesus_n christ_n many_o in_o word_n do_v make_v use_n of_o christ_n for_o acceptation_n with_o god_n but_o unless_o your_o heart_n have_v be_v hold_v up_o and_o strong_o draw_v to_o make_v use_n of_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o suffering_n and_o intercession_n of_o christ_n you_o have_v not_o the_o leading_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o those_o that_o attain_v unto_o this_o do_v find_v acceptance_n with_o god_n joh._n 14._o v._n 13_o 14._o &_o 15._o v._o 16._o
&_o 16._o v._o 23._o coloss_n 3.17_o and_o gospel_n promise_n be_v the_o casket_n wherein_o the_o jewel_n christ_n jesus_n be_v lay_v up_o the_o chariot_n whereby_o a_o soul_n may_v ride_v to_o that_o king_n of_o glory_n in_o triumph_n the_o ship_n wherein_o it_o may_v embark_v itself_o and_o go_v full_a sail_n to_o he_o for_o all_o the_o mercy_n it_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o 2_o pet._n 1.4_o 2_o corin._n 1.20_o and_o when_o it_o hearty_o make_v use_v of_o christ_n by_o these_o than_o it_o enjoy_v the_o leading_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o promise_n 5._o when_o spiritual_a thing_n be_v those_o which_o the_o heart_n be_v most_o affect_a and_o take_v up_o with_o and_o make_v out_o most_o after_o rom._n 8.5_o they_o that_o be_v after_o the_o spirit_n do_v mind_n the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n i_o e._n mind_n they_o as_o if_o they_o have_v nothing_o else_o to_o mind_n or_o they_o mind_n these_o far_o more_o than_o any_o other_o thing_n they_o can_v see_v but_o little_a excellency_n in_o duty_n that_o other_o may_v high_o esteem_v of_o if_o they_o find_v not_o the_o breathe_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o they_o phil._n 3._o v._n 3._o we_o worship_v god_n in_o the_o spirit_n they_o worship_v god_n in_o the_o flesh_n before_o in_o a_o carnal_a way_n but_o now_o in_o the_o spirit_n joh._n 3._o v._n 6._o what_o soever_o be_v of_o the_o spirit_n be_v spirit_n i_o e._n be_v spiritual_a when_o the_o spirituality_n of_o any_o way_n be_v the_o great_a attractive_a and_o draw_a inducement_n to_o affect_v of_o and_o walk_v in_o they_o when_o a_o soul_n do_v so_o savour_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o there_o be_v a_o readiness_n of_o heart_n to_o close_v with_o thing_n because_o spiritual_a and_o never_o think_v itself_o spiritual_a enough_o &c._n &c._n this_o argue_v the_o leading_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o hence_o believer_n be_v describe_v by_o spirituality_n 1_o corin._n 2.15_o he_o that_o be_v spiritual_a i.e._n a_o belee_o ever_o oppose_v to_o the_o natural_a man_n v._o 14._o 6._o when_o it_o be_v enable_v to_o act_v for_o spiritual_a and_o gospel_n end_n in_o gospel_n duty_n when_o it_o will_v not_o aim_v at_o selfe-advancement_n or_o its_o own_o name_n and_o glory_n as_o they_o do_v math._n 6._o v._n 1.5_o but_o when_o the_o great_a thing_n it_o ey_v or_o will_v eye_n in_o all_o act_n be_v the_o mortification_n of_o corruption_n and_o the_o attainment_n of_o communion_n with_o god_n and_o christ_n and_o increase_v of_o all_o grace_n growth_n in_o faith_n love_n selfe-denyal_n etc._n etc._n and_o when_o it_o seek_v for_o outward_a mercy_n in_o a_o subordination_n to_o these_o and_o in_o a_o way_n of_o subserviency_n to_o the_o interest_n and_o design_n of_o christ_n and_o when_o as_o the_o ultimate_a end_n of_o all_o it_o seek_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n 1_o cor._n 10.31_o then_o it_o enjoy_v the_o leading_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o thereby_o have_v its_o adoption_n witness_v to_o it_o and_o thus_o i_o have_v discover_v particular_o how_o a_o soul_n may_v know_v that_o the_o spirit_n have_v witness_v adoption_n 1._o by_o itself_o 2._o by_o blood_n 3._o by_o water_n chap._n xxi_o ten_o secondary_a general_n evidence_n which_o accompany_v the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o every_o one_o of_o those_o way_n of_o witness_v now_o i_o shall_v proceed_v to_o the_o secondary_a general_n evidence_n many_o of_o which_o if_o not_o all_o will_v accompany_v the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o every_o one_o of_o those_o way_n of_o witness_v by_o temptation_n they_o may_v be_v sometime_o interrupt_v yet_o not_o long_o while_o a_o testimony_n remain_v evidence_n 1._o when_o a_o soul_n enjoy_v the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n it_o have_v more_o than_o ordinary_a manifestation_n of_o that_o excellency_n which_o be_v in_o the_o thing_n it_o be_v assure_v of_o if_o such_o a_o word_n as_o this_o come_v in_o a_o witness_v way_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n cleanse_v thou_o from_o all_o thy_o sin_n the_o spirit_n raise_v more_o than_o ordinary_a apprehension_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n it_o hear_v of_o its_o virtue_n and_o excellency_n before_o but_o now_o it_o can_v say_v not_o half_o be_v tell_v i_o it_o high_o prize_v it_o before_o but_o its_o estimation_n thereof_o be_v hereby_o heighten_v exceed_o now_o nothing_o be_v comparable_a with_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o its_o account_n so_o psal_n 32.5_o when_o he_o can_v say_v thou_o forgave_v the_o iniquity_n of_o my_o sin_n then_o he_o can_v hold_v in_o no_o long_a but_o cry_v out_o v._o 1_o 2._o bless_a be_v he_o who_o transgression_n be_v forgive_v surely_n he_o account_v high_o of_o forgiveness_n before_o o_o but_o he_o have_v not_o such_o lively_a apprehension_n of_o it_o until_o it_o be_v witness_v to_o he_o v._o 5._o and_o now_o he_o write_v they_o bless_v that_o have_v a_o partnership_n with_o he_o in_o this_o forgive_a grace_n evid_v 2._o the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n fill_v the_o soul_n with_o unexpressible_a admiration_n of_o that_o divine_a love_n which_o appear_v in_o and_o about_o its_o adoption_n there_o be_v many_o passage_n between_o god_n and_o the_o soul_n which_o it_o pass_v over_o former_o and_o disregard_v that_o now_o be_v bring_v to_o its_o fresh_a remembrance_n and_o that_o to_o heighten_v its_o admiration_n 1_o joh._n 3.1_o behold_v what_o manner_n of_o love_n be_v this_o when_o they_o enjoy_v witnessing_n and_o can_v say_v we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n when_o they_o have_v that_o hope_n of_o see_v god_n as_o he_o be_v and_o of_o be_v make_v like_o to_o he_o v._o 2._o then_o their_o heart_n be_v so_o full_a that_o they_o can_v not_o hold_v without_o broach_v their_o apprehension_n of_o this_o adopt_v love_n and_o admiration_n be_v force_v to_o stand_v in_o the_o room_n of_o expression_n word_n be_v supplve_v with_o wonder_v behold_v what_o manner_n of_o love_n delusion_n may_v cause_v a_o man_n to_o wonder_v at_o his_o own_o suppose_a freedom_n from_o wrath_n and_o advancement_n to_o happiness_n but_o divine_a love_n be_v far_o less_o admire_v than_o his_o own_o advantage_n but_o where_o the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v enjoy_v 1._o a_o soul_n discern_v unexpressible_a love_n of_o good_a will_n in_o the_o first_o contrivance_n of_o its_o adoption_n it_o see_v that_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o creature_n will_v have_v be_v for_o ever_o non-plus_a if_o it_o have_v be_v leave_v to_o that_o to_o find_v out_o a_o way_n for_o its_o own_o recovery_n and_o it_o admire_v that_o god_n shall_v so_o love_v the_o world_n as_o to_o send_v his_o son_n his_o only_a son_n on_o this_o errand_n joh._n 3.16_o and_o upon_o view_v that_o it_o can_v but_o say_v what_o manner_n of_o love_n be_v this_o 2._o it_o find_v a_o love_n of_o compassion_n in_o his_o many_o strive_n with_o it_o while_o it_o be_v in_o a_o natural_a condition_n this_o light_n of_o the_o spirit_n help_v it_o to_o look_v a_o great_a way_n back_o and_o it_o see_v the_o walking_n and_o tender-hearted_a working_n of_o god_n towards_o it_o there_o how_o he_o at_o such_o and_o such_o a_o time_n allure_v persuade_v and_o woo_v it_o when_o it_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o its_o rebellion_n against_o he_o and_o though_o it_o go_v on_o froward_o and_o in_o the_o stubbornenes_n of_o its_o heart_n yet_o he_o iterate_v his_o invitation_n again_o and_o again_o and_o o_o say_v the_o soul_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o give_v over_o and_o say_v that_o his_o spirit_n shall_v strive_v no_o more_o with_o i_o what_o manner_n of_o love_n be_v this_o 3._o it_o view_v his_o love_n of_o delight_n which_o be_v discover_v in_o its_o adoption_n and_o wonder_v at_o that_o also_o believer_n see_v infinite_a condescension_n there_o in_o regard_n of_o their_o own_o unworthiness_n and_o so_o can_v but_o cry_v out_o with_o the_o apostle_n 1_o joh._n 3.1_o what_o manner_n of_o love_n be_v this_o that_o we_o who_o be_v enemy_n and_o fight_v against_o the_o lord_n of_o glory_n we_o who_o be_v full_a of_o deformity_n and_o in_o our_o blood_n cast_v out_o to_o the_o loathe_n of_o our_o person_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n o_o height_n depth_n length_n and_o breadth_n of_o this_o love_n if_o we_o have_v be_v make_v but_o as_o hire_a servant_n it_o have_v be_v a_o unspeakable_a privilege_n but_o to_o be_v own_v as_o son_n this_o be_v far_o beyond_o it_o what_o manner_n of_o love_n be_v this_o evid_v 3._o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n procure_v sorrow_n and_o selfe-correction_n for_o unkindness_n offer_v to_o the_o lord_n the_o soul_n see_v how_o love_n wrought_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o god_n towards_o it_o in_o such_o deal_n as_o it_o put_v misinterpretation_n upon_o before_o and_o have_v
against_o we_o under_o trial_n and_o tribulation_n but_o we_o have_v get_v ground_n of_o our_o corruption_n our_o pride_n discontent_n not_o only_a after_o distress_n but_o in_o they_o and_o so_o we_o be_v more_o than_o conqueror_n i._n e._n we_o have_v come_v off_o not_o only_o without_o loss_n but_o with_o much_o gain_n conqueror_n win_v the_o field_n but_o they_o lose_v much_o in_o win_v of_o it_o many_o valiant_a man_n fall_v in_o the_o battle_n o_o but_o christian_n gain_n in_o their_o grace_n and_o gain_v in_o their_o strength_n and_o gain_v in_o their_o comfort_n as_o their_o suffering_n abound_v so_o their_o consolation_n abound_v also_o and_o so_o they_o be_v more_o than_o conqueror_n object_n but_o may_v not_o a_o delusion_n so_o engage_v a_o man_n to_o itself_o as_o he_o may_v suffer_v much_o before_o he_o will_v disow_v it_o may_v not_o a_o man_n look_v death_n in_o the_o face_n with_o a_o carnal_a confidence_n answ_n suppose_v it_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o the_o engagednes_n of_o the_o heart_n to_o christ_n by_o sight_n of_o his_o love_n or_o the_o endearance_n of_o his_o will_n name_n and_o glory_n to_o it_o or_o the_o taste_a sweetness_n in_o communion_n with_o christ_n etc._n etc._n that_o bear_v up_o against_o suffering_n but_o a_o soul_n under_o the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v raise_v above_o his_o trouble_n and_o affliction_n upon_o such_o account_n rom._n 8.35.39_o phil._n 3.8_o for_o who_o i_o have_v suffer_v the_o loss_n of_o all_o thing_n carnal_a confidence_n be_v not_o at_o first_o build_v and_o bottom_v upon_o christ_n and_o be_v at_o present_a sed_fw-la and_o support_v by_o security_n disregard_n stupidity_n stout-heartednes_a will_n desire_v to_o be_v account_v immovable_a and_o unwillingnes_n to_o own_o the_o shame_n of_o former_a hypocrifie_n and_o such_o carnal_a prop_n bear_v it_o up_o and_o engage_v to_o adhere_v unto_o it_o under_o suffering_n which_o be_v enough_o to_o evidence_n it_o to_o be_v a_o delusion_n evid_v 8._o the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n beget_v a_o persuasion_n in_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o lord_n afford_v it_o suitable_a provision_n for_o it_o at_o all_o time_n and_o in_o all_o condition_n before_o it_o go_v droop_v under_o fear_n that_o it_o shall_v want_v protect_a grace_n under_o danger_n and_o support_v grace_n under_o suffering_n and_o persevere_v grace_n under_o trial_n it_o fear_v that_o it_o shall_v not_o hold_v out_o to_o the_o end_n and_o be_v mistrust_v god_n in_o every_o condition_n but_o when_o the_o spirit_n have_v witness_v adoption_n than_o it_o be_v deliver_v from_o all_o these_o fear_n it_o can_v say_v with_o he_o psal_n 23.1_o i_o shall_v not_o want_v when_v it_o can_v say_v the_o lord_n be_v my_o shepherd_n this_o engage_v strong_o against_o mistrust_n fullness_n which_o former_o it_o give_v much_o way_n to_o and_o strike_v a_o deep_a sense_n into_o the_o soul_n of_o its_o unbelief_n than_o it_o have_v that_o it_o can_v but_o recall_v itself_o it_o say_v before_o i_o shall_v want_v when_v it_o can_v not_o say_v i_o do_v want_n it_o be_v mistrust_n run_v before_o its_o necessity_n but_o now_o it_o unsay_v it_o and_o chick_v itself_o for_o it_o yea_o it_o run_v as_o far_o forward_o in_o its_o say_v as_o before_o it_o do_v in_o its_o unbelief_n it_o do_v not_o only_o say_v i_o do_v not_o want_v in_o the_o present_a time_n but_o i_o shall_v not_o want_v for_o the_o future_a though_o i_o shall_v be_v afflict_v tempt_v persecute_a etc._n etc._n yet_o i_o shall_v not_o want_v paul_n can_v argue_v himself_o into_o a_o confidence_n of_o sufficient_a provision_n when_o he_o see_v that_o nothing_o shall_v separate_v from_o christ_n rom._n 8.32_o he_o that_o spare_v not_o his_o son_n how_o shall_v he_o not_o with_o he_o give_v we_o all_o thing_n i.e._n all_o thing_n needful_a in_o all_o condition_n not_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n but_o enough_o of_o all_o thing_n grace_n enough_o and_o peace_n enough_o strength_n enough_o wealth_n enough_o etc._n etc._n this_o be_v his_o collection_n from_o that_o premise_v and_o how_o shall_v he_o not_o &_o c_o it_o be_v a_o interogation_n that_o import_v that_o see_v he_o spare_v not_o christ_n the_o great_a it_o be_v out_o of_o question_n he_o will_v not_o be_v spare_v in_o other_o blessing_n which_o be_v far_o lesser_a evid_v 9_o the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n make_v the_o soul_n exceed_o vigilant_a against_o whatever_o may_v occasion_v a_o interruption_n in_o its_o communion_n with_o christ_n the_o most_o glorious_a revelation_n be_v follow_v oftentimes_o with_o the_o most_o horrid_a and_o violent_a temptation_n as_o 2_o cor._n 12.8_o 9_o &_o matth._n 3._o v._n 16_o 17._o the_o spirit_n descend_v and_o a_o full_a testimony_n be_v give_v v._o 17._o this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v and_o the_o next_o news_n be_v mat._n 4.1_o then_o be_v jesus_n lead_v up_o of_o the_o spirit_n to_o be_v tempt_v question_v not_o a_o testimony_n bare_o because_o you_o find_v variety_n of_o new_a temptation_n after_o it_o unless_o it_o dispose_v you_o to_o yield_v and_o consent_v to_o they_o and_o occasion_n their_o prevail_a over_o you_o these_o you_o be_v to_o look_v for_o and_o expect_v after_o such_o a_o time_n but_o if_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o witness_n it_o will_v make_v you_o watchful_a against_o these_o gant_n 8.4_o i_o charge_v you_o stir_v not_o up_o nor_o awake_v my_o love_n until_o he_o please_v she_o be_v very_o fearful_a of_o whatsoever_o may_v displease_v he_o and_o when_o be_v it_o v._o 3._o when_o she_o enjoy_v left-hand_a supportment_n and_o right-hand_a embrace_n from_o christ_n soul_n be_v double_a watchful_a against_o whatsoever_o may_v interrupt_v their_o communion_n with_o christ_n after_o a_o full_a fruition_n of_o it_o evid_v 10._o the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n draw_v out_o earnest_a expectation_n of_o full_a communion_n with_o christ_n the_o soul_n be_v so_o ravish_v with_o what_o it_o do_v enjoy_v that_o it_o be_v even_o swallow_v up_o with_o desire_n after_o full_a enjoyment_n of_o it_o one_o that_o former_o be_v under_o bondage_n through_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n now_o know_v not_o almost_o how_o to_o be_v content_a to_o live_v any_o long_a but_o be_v force_v into_o that_o holy_a complaint_n 2_o cor._n 5.7_o i_o live_v by_o faith_n and_o not_o by_o sight_n a_o life_n of_o faith_n be_v a_o glorious_a life_n and_o yet_o at_o such_o a_o day_n it_o can_v but_o bemoan_v itself_o for_o its_o want_n of_o sight_n it_o groan_v earnest_o desire_v to_o be_v clothe_v upon_o and_o this_o be_v the_o matter_n of_o its_o lamentation_n that_o it_o be_v absent_a from_o the_o lord_n v._o 2.6_o christ_n be_v present_a with_o the_o saint_n by_o faith_n in_o this_o life_n but_o their_o communion_n here_o admit_v of_o many_o interruption_n there_o be_v recess_n as_o well_o as_o access_n they_o be_v subject_a to_o withdrawing_n and_o seem_a distance_n and_o nothing_o but_o immediate_a communion_n will_v afford_v they_o a_o fullness_n of_o contentment_n and_o therefore_o with_o a_o holy_a impatiency_n they_o desire_v to_o be_v dissolve_v that_o they_o may_v be_v with_o christ_n which_o be_v best_a of_o all_o and_o thus_o i_o have_v finish_v these_o secondary_a evidence_n which_o may_v be_v useful_a 1._o for_o direction_n to_o such_o as_o enjoy_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n here_o they_o may_v see_v what_o improvement_n they_o be_v to_o make_v thereof_o 2._o for_o confirmation_n unto_o those_o that_o have_v enjoy_v a_o testimony_n which_o have_v be_v follow_v up_o these_o way_n let_v they_o beware_v of_o question_v it_o and_o the_o want_n of_o these_o or_o many_o of_o they_o as_o the_o issue_n of_o such_o a_o persuasion_n especial_o if_o the_o confidence_n remain_v still_o it_o a_o dangerous_a symptom_n of_o a_o satanical_a delusion_n chap._n xxii_o four_o objection_n answer_v before_o i_o leave_v this_o question_n i_o shall_v answer_v four_o objection_n obj._n 1_o may_v a_o soul_n say_v i_o have_v have_v some_o feeble_a hope_n that_o i_o have_v enjoy_v the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o some_o of_o those_o way_n aforemention_v but_o see_v satan_n counterfeit_v the_o choice_n work_v of_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o prophet_n say_v the_o heart_n of_o man_n be_v deceitful_a above_o all_o thing_n who_o can_v know_v it_o jer._n 17.9_o how_o shall_v i_o know_v that_o i_o have_v pass_v a_o right_a judgement_n on_o my_o own_o condition_n and_o be_o not_o mistake_v answ_n the_o spirit_n by_o the_o word_n do_v give_v a_o infallible_a assurance_n unto_o soul_n that_o its_o testimony_n be_v true_a it_o be_v ascertain_v unto_o soul_n 1._o by_o the_o spirit_n 1_o cor._n 2.10.12_o rom._n 8.16_o 1_o joh._n 5.9_o 10._o 2._o by_o the_o word_n that_o be_v the_o
lead_v i_o in_o the_o way_n everlasting_a then_o the_o defectiveness_n of_o thy_o knowledge_n be_v such_o as_o be_v common_a to_o thou_o with_o the_o choice_a saint_n and_o be_v assure_v that_o no_o secret_a sin_n have_v dominion_n over_o thou_o but_o thou_o be_v a_o hair_n of_o the_o everlasting_a kingdom_n for_o joh._n 17.3_o this_o be_v life_n eternal_a to_o know_v the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n who_o he_o have_v send_v object_n 4._o i_o have_v find_v a_o great_a impression_n make_v upon_o my_o spirit_n by_o a_o word_n or_o promise_n but_o upon_o a_o serious_a search_n i_o can_v conclude_v whither_o it_o be_v from_o satan_n or_o a_o testimony_n of_o the_o divine_a spirit_n what_o be_o i_o to_o do_v in_o such_o a_o case_n answ_n 1._o observe_v what_o duty_n thy_o present_a condition_n call_v for_o and_o walk_v up_o to_o that_o that_o impression_n may_v be_v but_o a_o forerunner_n of_o the_o mercy_n which_o be_v a_o come_n hab._n 2._o v._n 3._o the_o vision_n be_v for_o a_o appoint_a time_n thou_o must_v wait_v for_o it_o and_o at_o last_o it_o will_v come_v and_o will_v not_o tarry_v thou_o may_v be_v as_o successful_a in_o press_v forward_o towards_o what_o be_v before_o as_o in_o ponder_v upon_o what_o be_v past_a or_o present_a christ_n do_v often_o speak_v in_o parable_n and_o the_o interpretation_n come_v afterward_o christ_n warm_v the_o heart_n of_o his_o disciple_n in_o his_o talk_n with_o they_o and_o expound_v the_o scripture_n to_o they_o but_o yet_o they_o know_v not_o that_o it_o be_v his_o voice_n until_o they_o come_v up_o to_o some_o other_o duty_n luk._n 24._o v._n 29_o 30_o 31_o 32._o 2._o conclude_v not_o either_o way_n upon_o slighty_a ground_n if_o it_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o thou_o call_v it_o the_o voice_n of_o satan_n thou_o offere_v a_o great_a unkindness_n to_o the_o spirit_n if_o it_o be_v from_o satan_n and_o thou_o call_v it_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o spirit_n thou_o deceive_v thy_o own_o soul_n better_o to_o leave_v it_o dubious_a then_o to_o conclude_v either_o way_n unsafe_o yet_o have_v sufficient_a ground_n neglect_v not_o the_o conclusion_n 3._o be_v careful_a to_o make_v some_o improvement_n of_o it_o for_o christ_n and_o against_o satan_n say_v thus_o with_o thyself_o this_o dispensation_n have_v a_o great_a stamp_n upon_o it_o whither_o it_o be_v by_o the_o finger_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o not_o i_o can_v tell_v i_o will_v see_v if_o it_o may_v not_o be_v of_o advantage_n towards_o the_o exercise_n of_o some_o gospel_n grace_n as_o faith_n patience_n humility_n if_o thou_o can_v not_o tell_v but_o christ_n may_v have_v say_v to_o thou_o i_o be_o thou_o be_v sure_a thou_o make_v use_v of_o this_o towards_o selfe-resignation_n let_v thy_o heart_n answer_v this_o voice_n and_o echo_v back_o again_o lord_n i_o be_o thou_o zech._n 13.9_o and_o here_o satan_n will_v loose_v ground_n though_o it_o shall_v be_v he_o that_o speak_v to_o thou_o if_o christian_n do_v soon_o break_v off_o those_o distract_n perplex_v thought_n about_o that_o question_n whither_o those_o work_n they_o have_v feel_v proceed_v from_o satan_n or_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n when_o it_o lie_v dark_a and_o do_v seek_v to_o find_v out_o his_o name_n that_o speak_v unto_o they_o by_o pursue_v gracious_a resolution_n not_o to_o let_v he_o go_v until_o they_o have_v obtain_v a_o blessing_n o_o how_o may_v they_o be_v free_v from_o a_o great_a many_o of_o those_o toss_n fear_n faint_n unsettlement_n which_o they_o labour_v under_o if_o they_o do_v improve_v such_o dispensation_n to_o the_o contradict_v the_o end_n of_o satan_n 27.30_o gen._n 32._o v._n 26_o 27.30_o they_o may_v at_o last_o see_v god_n as_o it_o be_v face_n to_o face_n and_o so_o the_o issue_n will_v be_v glorious_a chap._n xxiii_o of_o the_o mean_n to_o the_o attain_n strengthen_v and_o preserve_v the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n qu_n 5._o by_o what_o mean_n may_v the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v attain_v strengthen_v and_o preserve_v in_o a_o soul_n answ_n 1._o wait_v for_o the_o spirit_n the_o lord_n be_v free_a and_o ready_a to_o afford_v it_o unto_o those_o he_o have_v own_v as_o his_o child_n luk._n 11._o v._n 13._o how_o much_o more_o shall_v your_o heavenly_a father_n give_v the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o they_o that_o ask_v he_o here_o be_v the_o great_a reason_n that_o so_o many_o christian_n be_v so_o much_o without_o assurance_n because_o they_o look_v so_o little_a to_o the_o spirit_n for_o it_o neither_o promise_n nor_o grace_n without_o the_o irradiation_n of_o the_o spirit_n can_v be_v effectual_o witness_v 1_o cor._n 2._o v._n 10.12_o a_o true_a dial_n have_v a_o aptitude_n to_o give_v the_o hour_n of_o the_o day_n but_o unless_o the_o sun_n shine_v you_o can_v know_v nothing_o by_o it_o so_o it_o may_v be_v daylight_n with_o your_o soul_n and_o you_o may_v have_v precious_a grace_n that_o have_v a_o aptitude_n to_o witness_v adoption_n but_o they_o can_v do_v it_o without_o the_o shineing_n of_o the_o spirit_n upon_o its_o own_o work_n in_o your_o soul_n it_o be_v report_v that_o the_o sabine_a stone_n be_v of_o a_o dark_a duskish_a colour_n till_o it_o be_v sprinkle_v with_o oil_n 588._o plin._n part_n 2._o p._n 588._o and_o then_o it_o will_v burn_v of_o a_o light_a fire_n so_o grace_n and_o experience_n be_v of_o a_o duskish_a colour_n till_o the_o oil_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v pour_v on_o they_o and_o then_o they_o will_v burn_v forth_o with_o brightness_n so_o as_o to_o witness_v unto_o soul_n their_o adoption_n and_o therefore_o this_o direction_n must_v run_v through_o all_o those_o that_o follow_v 2._o maintain_v a_o firm_a persuasion_n that_o it_o be_v your_o duty_n to_o seek_v after_o the_o witnessing_n of_o the_o spirit_n some_o account_n it_o their_o duty_n to_o live_v in_o a_o doubt_n and_o question_v condition_n and_o be_v apt_a to_o think_v they_o shall_v sin_v if_o they_o shall_v seek_v for_o assurance_n other_o breathe_v out_o sad_a complaint_n for_o their_o be_v without_o it_o and_o yet_o look_v not_o upon_o the_o seek_n after_o it_o under_o the_o notion_n of_o duty_n whereas_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v very_o studious_a about_o that_o as_o well_o as_o other_o duty_n 2_o pet._n 1.10_o give_v diligence_n to_o make_v your_o call_n and_o election_n sure_a it_o be_v not_o bare_o a_o permission_n but_o a_o injunction_n and_o so_o it_o will_v be_v a_o act_n of_o disobedience_n and_o your_o great_a sin_n to_o neglect_v the_o press_n after_o assurance_n 3._o beware_v of_o those_o thing_n that_o tend_v to_o keep_v off_o from_o assurance_n 1._o beware_v of_o suppose_v it_o impossible_a to_o attain_v it_o many_o labour_n under_o discouragement_n from_o hence_o and_o thereupon_o seek_v but_o little_a after_o it_o that_o it_o be_v attaineable_a see_v isai_n 45._o v._n 24._o &_o 63._o v._o 16._o 2_o cor._n 5._o v._n 1.6_o 2._o beware_v of_o limit_v the_o lord_n to_o your_o time_n some_o will_v fain_o enjoy_v it_o but_o they_o tie_v up_o the_o lord_n to_o this_o duty_n and_o that_o time_n and_o will_v not_o wait_v his_o ley_fw-fr sure_a for_o it_o 3._o beware_v of_o grieve_v the_o spirit_n ephes_n 4.30_o if_o you_o have_v any_o motion_n from_o the_o spirit_n o_o cherish_v improve_v follow_v up_o these_o for_o if_o the_o spirit_n suspend_v its_o operation_n you_o will_v be_v at_o a_o loss_n indeed_o for_o assurance_n 4._o beware_v of_o yield_v to_o carnal_a and_o unbelieved_a reason_n many_o dispute_v themselves_o into_o unbelief_n but_o he_o psal_n 42.5_o reason_v his_o own_o heart_n out_o of_o it_o why_o be_v thou_o cast_v down_o o_o my_o soul_n 5._o beware_v of_o nourish_v any_o sin_n heb._n 10._o v._o 22._o let_v we_o draw_v near_o with_o a_o true_a heart_n in_o full_a assurance_n of_o faith_n but_o how_o shall_v we_o do_v that_o have_v our_o heart_n sprinkle_v from_o a_o evil_a conscience_n what_o be_v a_o evil_a conscience_n but_o one_o just_o accuse_v for_o or_o charge_v with_o sin_n and_o there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o be_v deliver_v from_o that_o evil_a conscience_n but_o by_o a_o hearty_a application_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n for_o remission_n and_o putification_n that_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o sprinkle_v 1_o pet._n 1.2_o many_o set_v pore_v upon_o and_o complain_v of_o some_o corruption_n and_o that_o because_o of_o these_o they_o be_v without_o assurance_n but_o if_o you_o will_v have_v full_a assurance_n then_o seek_v to_o be_v sprinkle_v from_o they_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n 6._o beware_v of_o spiritual_a sloth_n and_o carnal_a security_n heb._n 6.11_o show_v the_o same_o diligence_n to_o the_o full_a assurance_n of_o hope_n 2_o pet._n 1.10_o negligence_n be_v a_o great_a enemy_n to_o
39_o etc._n etc._n but_o the_o lord_n end_v herein_o be_v not_o to_o lead_v he_o into_o contradictory_n apprehension_n to_o his_o oath_n that_o he_o have_v pass_v just_a before_o but_o to_o give_v he_o a_o opportunity_n to_o believe_v above_o and_o against_o hope_n 7._o in_o all_o importunity_n with_o god_n for_o the_o testimony_n of_o his_o spirit_n make_v use_n of_o argument_n draw_v from_o god_n himself_o do_v not_o present_v the_o lord_n with_o your_o prayer_n or_o any_o performance_n of_o your_o own_o but_o urge_v his_o name_n nature_n word_n or_o free_a promise_n etc._n etc._n isai_n 63._o v._n 15._o he_o plead_v and_o expostulate_v with_o the_o lord_n where_o be_v thy_o zeal_n and_o strength_n the_o sound_v of_o thy_o bowel_n and_o of_o thy_o mercy_n towards_o i_o be_v they_o restrain_v and_o present_o there_o be_v assurance_n v._o 16._o doubtless_o thou_o be_v our_o father_n so_o exod._n 34.6_o the_o lord_n proclaim_v that_o he_o pardon_v iniquity_n transgression_n and_o sin_n and_o moses_n take_v advantage_n to_o challenge_v god_n of_o his_o word_n a_o long_a time_n after_o numb_a 14._o v._n 17_o 18._o as_o thou_o have_v speak_v say_v the_o lord_n be_v long-suffering_a and_o of_o great_a mercy_n forgive_a iniquity_n and_o at_o last_o he_o draw_v out_o a_o testimony_n from_o the_o lord_n v._o 20._o i_o have_v pardon_v according_a to_o thy_o word_n 8._o seek_v for_o much_o inward_a acquaintance_n with_o the_o write_a word_n the_o word_n declare_v what_o faith_n be_v and_o so_o for_o other_o grace_n it_o be_v the_o touchstone_n to_o try_v a_o testimony_n by_o that_o be_v attain_v it_o be_v a_o preservative_n against_o sin_n and_o temptation_n if_o hide_v in_o the_o heart_n psal_n 119.11_o math._n 4.10_o and_o these_o yield_v to_o do_v tend_v to_o weaken_v and_o darken_v assurance_n here_o i_o shall_v add_v a_o few_o rule_n about_o make_v use_n of_o scripture_n that_o may_v be_v profitable_a not_o only_o towards_o assurance_n but_o to_o other_o end_n also_o 1._o some_o spiritual_a consideration_n see_v to_o arise_v from_o the_o word_n may_v be_v make_v use_n of_o as_o well_o as_o express_v scripture_n if_o thou_o have_v a_o temptation_n that_o thou_o can_v not_o find_v any_o express_a scripture_n to_o help_v thou_o against_o it_o yet_o some_o scripturall_a consideration_n may_v be_v beneficial_a towards_o thy_o relief_n and_o soule-establishment_n psal_n 73._o he_o be_v tempt_v by_o the_o prosperity_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o the_o adversity_n of_o the_o saint_n to_o say_v v._o 13._o very_o have_v cleanse_v my_o heart_n in_o vain_a and_o he_o be_v at_o a_o great_a loss_n v._o 16_o 17._o when_o i_o think_v to_o know_v this_o it_o be_v too_o painful_a for_o i_o until_o i_o go_v into_o the_o sanctuary_n but_o how_o be_v he_o keep_v up_o against_o the_o temptation_n before_o his_o go_v into_o the_o sanctuary_n v._o 15._o if_o i_o say_v i_o will_v speak_v thus_o behold_v i_o shall_v offend_v against_o the_o generation_n of_o thy_o child_n this_o spiritual_a consideration_n keep_v it_o from_o prevail_a viz._n that_o if_o he_o shall_v affirm_v it_o he_o must_v say_v that_o the_o lord_n never_o have_v a_o people_n on_o earth_n for_o adam_n noah_n abraham_n isaac_n jacob_n and_o all_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o ever_o be_v have_v be_v exercise_v with_o affliction_n and_o cross_n 2._o that_o which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o drift_n and_o consonant_n to_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n or_o his_o main_a end_n in_o any_o scripture_n it_o to_o he_o own_v as_o of_o god_n though_o not_o contain_v in_o express_a word_n in_o scripture_n a_o christian_a be_v apt_a to_o be_v stumble_v when_o some_o part_n of_o a_o scripture_n though_o of_o a_o perfect_a and_o entire_a sense_n be_v cast_v in_o if_o there_o be_v a_o variation_n in_o some_o term_n from_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n and_o hereupon_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o reject_v it_o and_o to_o reckon_v it_o not_o from_o god_n whereas_o if_o it_o bear_v the_o sense_n of_o some_o one_o place_n or_o have_v the_o drift_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o it_o thou_o ought_v to_o improve_v it_o if_o suitable_a to_o thy_o condition_n else_o all_o interpretation_n of_o the_o word_n be_v useless_a math._n 4._o v._n 9_o satan_n tempt_v christ_n to_o worship_v he_o and_o christ_n oppose_v he_o with_o deut._n 6.13_o &_o 10.20_o thou_o shall_v fear_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o serve_v he_o by_o fear_v here_o be_v mean_v worship_n as_o fear_v isa_n 29.13_o be_v expound_v by_o worship_n math._n 15.9_o and_o serve_v he_o be_v intend_v exclusive_o of_o service_n to_o any_o other_o as_o appeareth_z deut._n 6.14_o and_o though_o neither_o worship_n nor_o only_a be_v find_v in_o the_o place_n he_o allege_v and_o the_o chief_a stress_n of_o the_o answer_n rest_v upon_o those_o two_o word_n yet_o because_o that_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n &_o meaning_n of_o they_o hence_o christ_n say_v it_o be_v write_v thou_o shall_v worship_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v so_o that_o scripture_n in_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o they_o be_v useful_a against_o temptation_n and_o towards_o comfort_n or_o any_o spiritual_a end_n though_o the_o very_a term_n be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o word_n that_o be_v in_o thy_o thought_n 3._o a_o scripture_n make_v use_v of_o in_o one_o condition_n may_v have_v much_o deducible_a from_o it_o that_o may_v be_v succour_v to_o a_o soul_n in_o another_o condition_n or_o that_o which_o be_v use_v upon_o one_o occasion_n may_v be_v useful_a on_o another_o occasion_n math._n 4._o v._n 7._o it_o be_v write_v thou_o shall_v not_o tempt_v the_o lord_n christ_n make_v use_v of_o that_o scripture_n deut._n 6.16_o here_o it_o be_v speak_v to_o israel_n christ_n allege_v it_o against_o satan_n here_o israel_n be_v forbid_v tempt_a god_n as_o at_o massab_n of_o which_o see_v exod._n 17._o v._o 1.7_o in_o their_o distress_n and_o want_v they_o tempt_v god_n by_o say_v be_v god_n among_o we_o their_o not_o trust_v god_n for_o extraordinary_a preservation_n and_o provision_n be_v their_o tempt_a of_o he_o and_o yet_o christ_n allege_v it_o against_o trust_v of_o god_n for_o extraordinary_a preservation_n without_o a_o call_v to_o it_o or_o when_o ordinary_a mean_n be_v afford_v 4._o a_o part_n of_o a_o scripture_n may_v be_v intend_v for_o thy_o present_a advantage_n &_o not_o the_o whole_a math._n 4._o v._n 7._o christ_n make_v use_v of_o but_o part_n of_o that_o deut._n 6.16_o so_o much_o of_o it_o as_o wa●_n suitable_a to_o his_o present_a occasion_n so_o one_o part_n of_o a_o promise_n may_v be_v fulfil_v to_o thou_o and_o it_o be_v no_o ground_n of_o question_v whither_o it_o be_v from_o the_o lord_n or_o no_o because_o the_o whole_a of_o it_o be_v not_o accomplish_v to_o thou_o 5._o a_o bare_a give_v in_o of_o a_o word_n be_v not_o a_o safe_a ground_n for_o conclusion_n about_o what_o be_v a_o soul_n duty_n or_o condition_n i_o observe_v that_o christian_n in_o these_o day_n build_v much_o upon_o the_o give_v or_o bint_v in_o of_o word_n when_o they_o be_v in_o a_o great_a ftreight_o about_o what_o be_v their_o duty_n or_o what_o they_o be_v call_v to_o if_o a_o write_a word_n be_v hint_v though_o it_o speak_v nothing_o to_o the_o case_n in_o hand_n neither_o express_o nor_o by_o consequence_n yet_o if_o they_o have_v inclination_n thereupon_o to_o one_o way_n more_o than_o another_o they_o be_v apt_a to_o conclude_v their_o call_n to_o lie_v there_o whereas_o if_o the_o word_n which_o be_v give_v in_o do_v evidence_n this_o to_o be_v duty_n at_o this_o time_n or_o in_o this_o condition_n then_o they_o have_v cause_n to_o bless_v the_o lord_n for_o the_o bring_n to_o remembrance_n a_o word_n which_o be_v of_o directive_n use_v to_o they_o but_o then_o they_o be_v to_o make_v not_o the_o give_v in_o of_o the_o word_n but_o the_o word_n it_o felse_a the_o rule_n and_o warrant_v that_o this_o be_v their_o duty_n other_o that_o know_v this_o or_o that_o to_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o believer_n yet_o they_o do_v not_o set_v about_o it_o until_o they_o have_v some_o particular_a word_n hint_v in_o to_o encourage_v thereunto_o and_o they_o wait_v for_o this_o bless_v god_n when_o you_o have_v one_o but_o if_o the_o spirit_n have_v enjoin_v it_o once_o by_o the_o word_n which_o be_v its_o own_o voice_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v sin_n and_o disobedience_n to_o neglect_v the_o duty_n though_o he_o do_v not_o add_v inward_a impulsion_n to_o it_o other_o upon_o the_o give_n in_o of_o some_o consolatory_a or_o witness_v word_n be_v apt_a to_o conciude_v about_o their_o in_o to_o dit_fw-fr in_o christ_n thence_o but_o all_o these_o act_n very_o 〈…〉_o 1._o because_o satan_n 〈◊〉_d a_o hand_n in_o the_o
use_n solicitation_n by_o a_o word_n as_o well_o we_o the_o divine_a spirit_n meth._n 4._o v._o 6._o satan_n it_o 〈◊〉_d christ_n with_o a_o it_o be_v write_v 〈…〉_o excite_v thou_o to_o that_o which_o as_o not_o thy_o duty_n by_o a_o word_n therefore_o unless_o thou_o can_v certain_o promise_v thyself_o that_o it_o proceed_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n it_o can_v be_v evident_v either_o of_o what_o be_v thy_o duty_n or_o condition_n unless_o the_o word_n it_o false_a give_v in_o do_v evidence_n it_o 2._o because_o i_o finder_n no_o rule_n to_o evidence_n that_o the_o spirit_n hime_v in_o of_o word_n be_v a_o ground_n for_o such_o conclusion_n i_o have_v hear_v many_o relate_v extraordinary_a passage_n of_o providence_n that_o attend_v the_o come_n in_o of_o the_o word_n as_o they_o do_v not_o know_v that_o there_o be_v any_o such_o scripture_n on_o where_o it_o be_v and_o yet_o open_v the_o book_n it_o be_v the_o first_o pl●●●_n the_o eye_n be_v cast_v upon_o etc._n etc._n now_o they_o ought_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o and_o own_v 〈…〉_o markable_a way_n as_o these_o be_v 〈…〉_o of_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o hereby_o to_o 〈…〉_o conclude_v about_o their_o own_o condition_n for_o mediate_o from_o the_o hint_n 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n but_o mediate_o by_o their_o come_n upon_o 〈◊〉_d end_n that_o the_o word_n itself_o which_o be_v hin●ed_v in_o point_v at_o a_o believer_n shall_v think_v thus_o with_o himself_o sure_o it_o be_v of_o great_a concernment_n to_o i_o to_o improve_v this_o word_n lesser_a providence_n ought_v to_o be_v follow_v up_o towards_o gospel_n end_n but_o great_a much_o more_o and_o therefore_o it_o stand_v i_o in_o hand_n to_o look_v about_o i_o that_o these_o remarkable_a one_o pass_v not_o away_o without_o attain_v some_o special_a end_n and_o if_o the_o word_n be_v improve_v for_o the_o end_v it_o aim_v at_o as_o quicken_a supportment_n the_o act_n of_o some_o grace_n etc._n etc._n these_o improvement_n of_o it_o be_v witness_v but_o if_o these_o be_v neglect_v the_o end_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o cast_v it_o in_o be_v unattain_v and_o so_o the_o conclusion_n draw_v from_o it_o be_v ungrounded_a 3._o because_o the_o prophet_n david_n ascribe_v all_o such_o effect_n to_o the_o word_n itself_o psal_n 119._o v._n 24.50.105.133_o it_o be_v the_o word_n that_o direct_v counsel_v quicken_v and_o comsort_v he_o doubtless_o there_o be_v a_o application_n of_o the_o word_n else_o it_o will_v not_o have_v accomplish_v these_o end_n but_o application_n denote_v the_o conveyance_n of_o the_o word_n into_o the_o heart_n and_o its_o implantation_n engraft_v and_o work_v mighty_o there_o which_o be_v sarre_o more_o then_o a_o hint_n of_o it_o in_o or_o the_o bring_n it_o to_o mind_n and_o yet_o he_o resolve_v all_o into_o the_o word_n itself_o apply_v rather_o than_o into_o the_o application_n 4._o because_o of_o the_o inconvenience_n and_o dangerous_a consequence_n that_o usual_o attend_v build_a conclusion_n about_o its_o duty_n or_o condition_n upon_o the_o bare_a hint_n in_o of_o word_n as_o hence_o a_o foul_a be_v often_o ready_a to_o reject_v a_o word_n suitable_a to_o its_o condition_n which_o if_o own_a might_n be_v of_o great_a advantage_n to_o it_o o_o say_v the_o soul_n i_o know_v not_o whither_o it_o only_o come_v to_o my_o remembrance_n by_o often_o read_v of_o it_o or_o be_v give_v in_o by_o the_o spirit_n whereas_o thou_o ought_v to_o have_v familiar_a acquaintance_n with_o the_o word_n deut._n 6._o v._o 7._o and_o it_o be_v thy_o mercy_n if_o thy_o mind_n be_v fill_v with_o variety_n of_o word_n suitable_a to_o the_o several_a exigency_n necessity_n and_o temptation_n thou_o meet_v withal_o their_o be_v familiarize_v to_o thou_o shall_v be_v so_o far_o from_o occasion_v perplexity_n that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v reckon_v thy_o great_a mercy_n that_o thou_o have_v they_o at_o hand_n when_o many_o be_v much_o at_o a_o loss_n for_o want_v of_o suitable_a word_n to_o their_o condition_n but_o know_v that_o the_o lord_n have_v bundle_v up_o the_o promise_n in_o the_o word_n that_o upon_o all_o occasion_n thou_o may_v have_v recourse_n to_o he_o by_o they_o for_o what_o thou_o want_v and_o so_o thou_o shall_v be_v so_o far_o from_o disow_v a_o suitable_a word_n when_o hint_v in_o that_o thou_o ought_v to_o go_v and_o take_v a_o word_n when_o it_o be_v not_o give_v in_o it_o be_v thy_o duty_n to_o search_v the_o scripture_n when_o thou_o be_v at_o a_o loss_n about_o any_o matter_n and_o to_o improve_v any_o word_n futable_a to_o thy_o condition_n that_o thou_o find_v as_o well_o as_o if_o it_o be_v hint_v in_o john_n 5.39_o search_v the_o scripture_n act_n 17._o v._o 11._o again_o some_o have_v persist_v in_o the_o neglect_n of_o their_o duty_n a_o great_a while_n for_o the_o want_n of_o the_o give_v in_o of_o a_o word_n and_o have_v lose_v much_o communion_n with_o god_n hereby_o other_o seeing_z themselves_o mistake_v in_o their_o conclusion_n from_o the_o hint_n in_o of_o word_n have_v be_v lead_v into_o a_o question_n of_o all_o their_o other_o experience_n therefore_o if_o a_o word_n suitable_a to_o thy_o condition_n be_v give_v in_o bless_v the_o lord_n for_o it_o if_o not_o find_v out_o one_o and_o take_v it_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o witness_v quicken_a support_v or_o comfort_v word_n and_o pray_v over_o it_o yea_o give_v the_o lord_n no_o rest_n until_o he_o have_v make_v a_o powerful_a application_n of_o thy_o heart_n so_o as_o to_o draw_v that_o out_o after_o christ_n by_o it_o and_o without_o this_o improvement_n of_o it_o for_o its_o proper_a end_n it_o point_v at_o the_o hint_n of_o it_o in_o will_v prove_v of_o but_o little_a advantage_n to_o there_o though_o by_o the_o spirit_n 9_o last_o hold_v fast_o the_o doctrine_n of_o perseverance_n the_o lord_n have_v promise_v that_o he_o will_v put_v his_o fear_n in_o their_o heart_n that_o he_o ow_v in_o the_o everlasting_a covenant_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o depart_v from_o he_o jere._n 32._o v._o 40._o and_o see_v psal_n 89_o v._n 30_o 31_o 32_o 33_o 34._o if_o his_o child_n forsake_v my_o law_n if_o they_o break_v my_o statute_n then_o will_v i_o visit_v their_o transgression_n with_o a_o rod_n and_o their_o iniquity_n with_o stripe_n nevertheless_o my_o love_a kindness_n will_v i_o not_o utter_o take_v from_o he_o my_o covenant_n will_v i_o not_o break_v here_o the_o lord_n declare_v what_o he_o will_v do_v if_o his_o people_n sin_n not_o cast_v they_o off_o but_o correct_v they_o so_o isa_n 54._o v._n 8_o 9_o 10._o as_o i_o have_v swear_v that_o the_o water_n of_o noah_n shall_v no_o more_o go_v over_o the_o earth_n so_o have_v i_o swear_v that_o i_o will_v not_o be_v wroth_a with_o thou_o nor_o rebuke_v thou_o for_o the_o mountain_n shall_v depart_v and_o the_o hill_n be_v remove_v but_o my_o kindness_n shall_v not_o depart_v from_o thou_o neither_o shall_v the_o covenant_n of_o my_o peace_n be_v remove_v say_v the_o lord_n that_o have_v mercy_n on_o thou_o a_o saint_n may_v fall_v into_o sin_n but_o he_o can_v fall_v from_o his_o faith_n see_v luke_n 22.32_o comp_n with_o john_n 17.20_o let_v go_v the_o doctrine_n of_o perseverance_n and_o thy_o peace_n will_v be_v like_o a_o morning_n dew_n that_o pass_v away_o but_o retain_v this_o and_o then_o thou_o may_v rejoice_v in_o the_o hope_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n finis_fw-la rose_n from_z sharon_n or_o sweet_a experience_n gather_v up_o by_o some_o precious_a heart_n whilst_o they_o follow_v on_o to_o know_v the_o lord_n publish_a for_o public_a soul-advantage_n cant._n 4.16_o awake_v o_o northwind_n and_o come_v thou_o south_n blow_v upon_o my_o garden_n that_o the_o spice_n thereof_o may_v flow_v out_o let_v my_o belove_a come_v into_o his_o garden_n and_o eat_v his_o pleasant_a fruit_n cant._n 7.12_o let_v we_o get_v up_o early_o to_o the_o vineyard_n let_v we_o see_v if_o the_o vine_n flourish_n whither_o the_o tender_a grape_n appear_v and_o the_o pomegranate_n bud_v forth_o there_o will_v i_o give_v thou_o my_o love_n london_n print_v by_o m._n s._n for_o livewell_n chapman_n 1654._o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o reader_n christian_n reader_n as_o christ_n the_o spiritual_a aaron_n do_v bear_v the_o name_n of_o spiritual_a israelite_n on_o his_o heart_n so_o they_o also_o do_v bear_v his_o name_n on_o they_o they_o be_v the_o epistle_n of_o christ_n and_o have_v his_o will_n write_v by_o the_o finger_n of_o the_o spirit_n on_o their_o inward_a man_n there_o be_v much_o intercourse_n and_o communion_n between_o christ_n and_o they_o and_o many_o sweet_a pussage_n which_o carnal_a heart_n know_v not_o of_o there_o be_v many_o outgoing_n of_o their_o joule_n towards_o christ_n and_o incoming_n of_o christ_n into_o
bid_v i_o be_v of_o good_a cheer_n another_o night_n i_o have_v many_o hard_a place_n of_o scripture_n very_o spiritual_o declare_v unto_o i_o in_o the_o day_n again_o i_o be_v trouble_v and_o have_v a_o kind_n of_o weakness_n and_o dread_n on_o my_o spirit_n but_o one_o time_n i_o do_v willing_o take_v a_o little_a contentment_n in_o the_o creature_n and_o there_o come_v a_o terror_n that_o i_o go_v about_o to_o resist_v the_o spirit_n and_o astonishment_n come_v and_o i_o resolve_v that_o i_o will_v take_v heed_n of_o yield_v to_o any_o such_o thing_n any_o more_o and_o that_o i_o will_v attend_v unto_o what_o shall_v be_v give_v in_o in_o the_o conclude_v of_o all_o spirit_n the_o witness_v of_o adoption_n by_o the_o spirit_n it_o be_v bring_v in_o to_o i_o thus_o what_o thou_o have_v see_v and_o behold_v it_o be_v the_o lord_n and_o god_n justify_v of_o thou_o thou_o have_v see_v his_o infinite_a and_o invincible_a power_n thy_o heart_n have_v be_v keep_v up_o and_o it_o be_v make_v sure_a to_o thou_o that_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n thou_o know_v it_o be_v he_o and_o none_o else_o it_o be_v irresistible_a now_o it_o be_v do_v i_o have_v seal_v thou_o up_o to_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n and_o cause_v thou_o to_o set_v to_o thy_o seal_n that_o i_o be_o true_a thou_o know_v it_o be_v god_n and_o have_v seal_v to_o it_o now_o go_v forth_o into_o thy_o call_v and_o attend_v upon_o it_o keep_v thy_o mind_n intent_n upon_o it_o and_o see_v thou_o do_v not_o dishonour_v i_o and_o i_o do_v so_o and_o find_v some_o stir_n of_o corruption_n &_o temptation_n assault_v which_o i_o do_v not_o before_o only_a fear_n and_o dread_n now_o the_o hardship_n come_v that_o day_n i_o have_v as_o hard_a a_o day_n of_o it_o as_o ever_o in_o my_o life_n then_o satan_n set_v on_o i_o with_o violent_a temptation_n and_o i_o be_v dark_a this_o ministration_n withdraw_v i_o have_v it_o no_o more_o that_o day_n and_o my_o heart_n be_v sad_a tempta_fw-la 1._o i_o be_v tempt_v that_o now_o my_o earthen_a vessel_n shall_v be_v break_v and_o i_o shall_v be_v distract_v etc._n etc._n and_o i_o have_v bring_v it_o upon_o myself_o and_o thus_o bring_v it_o because_o i_o have_v seek_v of_o god_n that_o he_o will_v reveal_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n to_o i_o and_o teach_v i_o etc._n etc._n and_o in_o the_o former_a ministration_n it_o be_v give_v in_o this_o be_v that_o thy_o soul_n desire_v some_o business_n be_v to_o be_v do_v and_o i_o do_v forget_v and_o it_o come_v upon_o i_o do_v thou_o not_o see_v thou_o have_v lose_v the_o use_n of_o reason_n have_v not_o better_a have_v be_v in_o a_o low_a condition_n but_o you_o will_v be_v teach_v of_o god_n and_o 1._o i_o be_v much_o affright_v that_o day_n and_o full_a of_o fear_n 2._o my_o heart_n be_v so_o dark_a that_o i_o can_v not_o reason_v the_o case_n with_o satan_n for_o than_o i_o may_v have_v tell_v he_o he_o be_v a_o liar_n for_o i_o desire_v understand_v in_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o covenant_n that_o my_o heart_n may_v go_v in_o a_o right_a way_n to_o christ_n but_o i_o can_v not_o reflect_v but_o whole_o attend_v to_o satan_n and_o satan_n give_v i_o impulsion_n to_o go_v read_v and_o try_v to_o pray_v suggest_v to_o i_o thou_o have_v nothing_o to_o pray_v thou_o have_v see_v god_n and_o need_v not_o faith_n etc._n etc._n 3._o yet_o i_o keep_v this_o all_o alongst_o that_o god_n be_v my_o father_n and_o though_o i_o be_v distress_v yet_o not_o in_o the_o least_o tear_n of_o perish_v satan_n can_v never_o shoot_v one_o arrow_n to_o make_v i_o think_v it_o be_v not_o of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o ministration_n it_o be_v give_v in_o that_o sin_n be_v command_v out_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v mingle_v with_o his_o work_n and_o no_o battery_n ever_o shall_v be_v make_v against_o it_o i_o know_v i_o be_v safe_a for_o eternity_n 4._o yet_o i_o consider_v with_o myself_o have_v it_o not_o be_v for_o i_o to_o have_v dye_v and_o be_v ready_a to_o say_v with_o peter_n depart_v from_o i_o 5.8_o luke_n 5.8_o for_o i_o be_o a_o sinful_a creature_n it_o be_v a_o sorrow_n to_o my_o soul_n that_o i_o have_v so_o much_o because_o i_o know_v not_o how_o to_o behave_v myself_o under_o it_o i_o entreat_v the_o lord_n to_o show_v i_o jesus_n that_o be_v fit_a for_o a_o mortal_a creature_n to_o look_v upon_o and_o present_o i_o fall_v into_o a_o mighty_a tremble_a but_o immediate_o recover_v myself_o thus_o the_o will_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v do_v and_o be_v quiet_v again_o as_o to_o that_o 5._o the_o lord_n day_n approach_v some_o of_o the_o family_n wish_v i_o to_o go_v out_o to_o hear_v and_o i_o desire_v every_o ordinance_n but_o by_o the_o tediousness_n of_o the_o weather_n i_o be_v then_o prevent_v and_o be_v at_o home_n in_o this_o dark_a condition_n all_o alone_a i_o resolve_v to_o set_v upon_o duty_n yet_o have_v no_o matter_n but_o to_o spread_v my_o misery_n before_o the_o lord_n i_o do_v excuse_v myself_o thus_o lord_n thou_o have_v be_v a_o wonder-working_a god_n in_o my_o soul_n i_o entreat_v thou_o teach_v i_o and_o show_v i_o jesus_n in_o who_o i_o have_v believe_v thou_o have_v tread_v the_o winepress_a alone_o and_o that_o for_o i_o thou_o have_v free_o lay_v down_o thy_o life_n and_o that_o for_o i_o thou_o have_v promise_v that_o those_o which_o keep_v the_o word_n of_o thy_o patience_n thou_o will_v keep_v they_o in_o the_o hour_n of_o temptation_n lord_n thou_o know_v this_o be_v the_o hour_n of_o my_o temptation_n i_o have_v neither_o faith_n nor_o feeling_n as_o thou_o have_v make_v i_o passive_a in_o enjoy_v so_o now_o make_v i_o passive_a in_o believe_v and_o i_o rehearse_v these_o word_n three_o time_n the_o lord_n rebuke_v thou_o the_o lord_n rebuke_v thou_o the_o lord_n rebuke_v thou_o 6._o temptation_n christ_n succour_v in_o temptation_n i_o find_v immediate_o a_o invincible_a power_n bear_v up_o my_o heart_n to_o cast_v help_n upon_o one_o that_o be_v mighty_a jesus_n christ_n and_o so_o evident_o and_o certain_o that_o one_o shall_v soon_o persuade_v i_o that_o a_o man_n which_o i_o see_v and_o have_v conference_n with_o be_v not_o a_o man_n then_o that_o i_o do_v not_o see_v christ_n by_o faith_n i_o do_v see_v myself_o take_v as_o out_o of_o the_o lion_n den_n and_o my_o heart_n triumph_v in_o christ_n that_o from_o this_o hour_n i_o can_v read_v and_o pray_v without_o trouble_n and_o feed_v upon_o christ_n i_o have_v another_o ministration_n in_o the_o night_n discover_v the_o difference_n between_o legal_a sorrow_n and_o gospel_n sorrow_n and_o i_o be_v put_v into_o a_o condition_n fit_a to_o bear_v it_o and_o my_o heart_n be_v melt_v into_o that_o gospel_n sorrow_n but_o i_o be_o not_o able_a to_o declare_v particular_o how_o it_o be_v with_o i_o here_o for_o a_o world_n tempta_fw-la 2._o after_o this_o satan_n do_v assault_v i_o very_o strong_o with_o this_o temptation_n that_o i_o do_v idolise_v the_o scripture_n from_o the_o first_o of_o these_o discovery_n be_v take_v with_o the_o scripture_n because_o all_o be_v convey_v by_o they_o to_o i_o i_o receive_v it_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n from_o what_o i_o have_v see_v before_o but_o now_o i_o know_v it_o from_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o its_o make_v my_o heart_n one_o with_o the_o scripture_n and_o now_o it_o be_v suggest_v that_o i_o make_v a_o idol_n of_o they_o and_o upon_o that_o i_o fall_v into_o a_o mighty_a tremble_a and_o fear_n for_o it_o come_v very_o sudden_o in_o a_o little_a space_n i_o have_v sweet_a refreshment_n and_o distillation_n of_o the_o spirit_n temptation_n help_v against_o temptation_n that_o come_v in_o thus_o not_o the_o letter_n but_o the_o spirit_n that_o write_v the_o scripture_n and_o my_o heart_n be_v quiet_v again_o tempta_fw-la 3._o another_o come_v that_o i_o do_v idolise_v the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o i_o be_v afraid_a of_o god_n and_o be_v take_v up_o in_o believe_v on_o jesus_n i_o be_v tremble_v and_o in_o a_o sweat_n and_o a_o great_a hurry_n upon_o this_o and_o o_o have_v it_o not_o be_v better_a that_o i_o have_v die_v and_o i_o fear_v i_o shall_v never_o be_v rid_v of_o they_o answ_n after_o a_o little_a space_n it_o be_v give_v in_o that_o the_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n be_v one_o pure_a essence_n and_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n 2.6_o phil._n 2.6_o think_v it_o not_o robbery_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n and_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o be_v with_o god_n and_o be_v god_n and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n assume_v our_o nature_n become_v a_o